Selected quad for the lemma: word_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
word_n faith_n scripture_n tradition_n 8,010 5 9.4856 5 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A33380 An historical defence of the Reformation in answer to a book intituled, Just-prejudices against the Calvinists / written in French by the reverend and learned Monsieur Claude ... ; and now faithfully translated into English by T.B., M.A.; Défense de la Réformation. English Claude, Jean, 1619-1687.; T. B., M.A. 1683 (1683) Wing C4593; ESTC R11147 475,014 686

There are 36 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

none_o be_v ignorant_a how_o they_o have_v mingle_v some_o false_a piece_n into_o the_o true_a work_n of_o the_o father_n as_o in_o those_o of_o justin_n martyr_n of_o origen_n of_o saint_n cyprian_n of_o saint_n athanasius_n of_o saint_n hilary_n of_o saint_n ambrose_n of_o saint_n chrysostome_n of_o saint_n jerome_n of_o saint_n augustin_n and_o almost_o general_o of_o all_o the_o father_n who_o name_n they_o have_v make_v use_n of_o to_o authorise_v their_o forgery_n none_o be_v ignorant_a what_o alteration_n they_o have_v make_v in_o the_o true_a write_n of_o the_o father_n whether_o by_o change_v their_o word_n or_o add_v to_o they_o or_o sometime_o in_o cut_v off_o considerable_a clause_n and_o whole_a passage_n entire_a who_o see_v not_o that_o these_o ill_a practice_n which_o of_o themselves_o be_v so_o odious_a in_o all_o sort_n of_o matter_n and_o especial_o in_o those_o of_o religion_n can_v not_o but_o increase_v the_o just_a suspicion_n that_o our_o father_n have_v of_o all_o that_o which_o they_o name_v tradition_n 14._o we_o may_v make_v the_o same_o judgement_n of_o that_o visible_a abuse_n about_o relic_n which_o be_v bring_v into_o the_o church_n for_o on_o the_o one_o side_n the_o devotion_n of_o the_o people_n be_v so_o hot_a as_o to_o that_o point_n that_o it_o can_v not_o keep_v itself_o within_o any_o measure_n and_o on_o the_o other_o the_o cheat_n about_o they_o be_v so_o multiply_v that_o even_o those_o of_o the_o weak_a understanding_n can_v not_o behold_v they_o without_o be_v ashamed_a of_o they_o that_o prodigious_a quantity_n of_o the_o wood_n of_o the_o true_a cross_n which_o be_v scatter_v over_o the_o world_n witness_n this_o as_o likewise_o the_o slipper_n and_o hose_n of_o saint_n joseph_n the_o shift_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n her_o coif_n her_o fillet_n her_o girdle_n her_o two_o comb_n her_o clothes_n her_o wedding-ring_n the_o sword_n wherewith_o saint_n michael_n fight_v with_o the_o devil_n the_o twelve_o comb_n of_o the_o apostle_n some_o of_o the_o stone_n wherewith_o saint_n steven_n be_v stone_v the_o skin_n of_o saint_n bartholomew_n the_o coal_n that_o broil_a saint_n laurence_n aaron_n rod_n the_o bone_n of_o abraham_n of_o isaac_n and_o jacob_n and_o beyond_o all_o that_o the_o multiplication_n of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o relic_n which_o be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o divers_a place_n for_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o ordinary_a then_o for_o one_o to_o see_v two_o three_o or_o four_o body_n of_o the_o same_o saint_n as_o of_o saint_n gervase_n saint_n protais_fw-fr saint_n sebastian_n of_o saint_n pretonilla_n saint_n anthony_n and_o some_o other_o all_o which_o be_v very_o much_o recommend_v to_o the_o people_n as_o the_o true_a object_n of_o their_o devotion_n not_o only_o without_o any_o certain_a ground_n but_o very_o often_o with_o all_o the_o appearance_n of_o falseness_n can_v not_o but_o create_v a_o vast_a prejudice_n of_o corruption_n in_o that_o church_n and_o religion_n 15._o moreover_o when_o our_o father_n cast_v their_o eye_n upon_o the_o four_o chief_a mean_n that_o god_n have_v establish_v in_o his_o church_n for_o the_o preserve_n of_o true_a faith_n and_o piety_n in_o it_o which_o be_v the_o scripture_n the_o public_a worship_n preach_v and_o the_o sacrament_n and_o when_o they_o consider_v after_o what_o manner_n they_o be_v alter_v and_o the_o use_n of_o all_o those_o mean_n almost_o bring_v to_o nothing_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a they_o can_v do_v otherwise_o than_o conclude_v that_o corruption_n whereof_o we_o dispute_v for_o as_o to_o the_o scripture_n instead_o of_o make_v that_o the_o only_a rule_n of_o faith_n they_o have_v join_v tradition_n with_o they_o that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o most_o uncertain_a thing_n in_o the_o world_n the_o most_o subject_a to_o imposture_n and_o the_o most_o mix_v with_o humane_a invention_n and_o weakness_n instead_o of_o recommend_v the_o read_n of_o that_o divine_a word_n to_o the_o faithful_a for_o their_o instruction_n and_o their_o comfort_n it_o can_v scarce_o be_v find_v even_o in_o the_o hand_n of_o some_o churchman_n and_o as_o for_o the_o school_n they_o know_v far_o better_a how_o to_o quote_v aristotle_n the_o master_n of_o the_o sentence_n albertus_n magnus_n saint_n thomas_n and_o saint_n bonaventure_n than_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n as_o for_o the_o public_a service_n they_o perform_v it_o some_o age_n ago_o in_o a_o strange_a tongue_n unknown_a to_o the_o people_n who_o by_o this_o mean_n be_v deprive_v of_o that_o benefit_n which_o they_o may_v just_o expect_v so_o that_o the_o assembly_n be_v become_v in_o that_o respect_n spring_v stop_v up_o for_o any_o public_a edification_n and_o their_o little_a prayer_n themselves_o the_o lord_n prayer_n and_o the_o creed_n be_v then_o read_v almost_o only_o in_o latin_a and_o the_o woman_n and_o child_n and_o people_n seem_v to_o know_v god_n only_o by_o the_o idea_n that_o be_v give_v they_o of_o that_o tongue_n in_o which_o notwithstanding_o they_o understand_v nothing_o as_o for_o preach_v beside_o that_o the_o pulpit_n in_o the_o great_a part_n of_o that_o time_n be_v abandon_v we_o have_v yet_o some_o book_n of_o the_o sermon_n which_o they_o make_v in_o those_o day_n as_o of_o jacobus_n de_fw-fr voragine_fw-la of_o a_o menot_n a_o maillard_n a_o barelette_n a_o discipulus_fw-la de_fw-fr tempore_fw-la which_o do_v no_o very_a great_a honour_n to_o their_o age._n they_o treat_v there_o far_o often_o of_o the_o legend_n of_o the_o saint_n than_o the_o truth_n of_o religion_n and_o that_o which_o be_v yet_o more_o deplorable_a instead_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n they_o preach_v almost_o nothing_o else_o but_o scandalous_o extravagant_a opinion_n raw_a parallel_n of_o a_o saint_n with_o jesus_n christ_n ridiculous_a story_n pleasant_a buffoonery_n and_o such_o like_a thing_n which_o to_o speak_v moderate_o be_v exceed_o remote_a from_o the_o natural_a design_n of_o the_o pulpit_n and_o render_v it_o not_o only_o despise_v but_o after_o a_o sort_n odious_a for_o that_o which_o respect_v the_o sacrament_n not_o to_o touch_v on_o those_o multitude_n of_o unprofitable_a ceremony_n wherewith_o they_o have_v load_v they_o we_o must_v confess_v that_o that_o opinion_n of_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o intention_n of_o the_o priest_n which_o be_v so_o general_o teach_v in_o the_o school_n and_o which_o eugenius_n the_o four_o have_v define_v in_o his_o instruction_n to_o the_o armenian_n in_o the_o council_n of_o florence_n it_o destroy_v almost_o all_o the_o benefit_n of_o those_o sacred_a mystery_n and_o cast_v man_n conscience_n into_o perpetual_a scruple_n and_o uncertainty_n for_o unless_o they_o can_v establish_v a_o revelation_n for_o every_o particular_a christian_a what_o assurance_n can_v we_o have_v that_o he_o who_o administer_v the_o sacrament_n to_o we_o have_v a_o intention_n to_o do_v that_o which_o the_o church_n enjoin_v he_o to_o do_v or_o that_o he_o have_v not_o a_o intention_n contrary_a to_o that_o of_o the_o church_n what_o assurance_n can_v be_v give_v that_o in_o all_o that_o long_a train_n of_o priest_n bishop_n and_o pope_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n who_o have_v be_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o christianity_n down_o to_o this_o present_a time_n there_o have_v not_o be_v any_o in_o who_o that_o intention_n which_o they_o make_v so_o necessary_a to_o the_o operation_n of_o the_o sacrament_n have_v be_v defective_a yet_o if_o one_o only_a priest_n that_o shall_v happen_v to_o baptise_v a_o pope_n have_v not_o have_v a_o intention_n to_o baptise_v he_o or_o if_o he_o himself_o be_v not_o true_o a_o priest_n by_o the_o default_n of_o the_o intention_n of_o he_o who_o give_v he_o order_n or_o he_o who_o baptise_a he_o if_o one_o only_a bishop_n who_o confer_v order_n on_o a_o pope_n then_o when_o he_o be_v make_v priest_n have_v not_o a_o intention_n to_o do_v what_o the_o church_n pretend_v to_o do_v all_o that_o which_o will_v come_v in_o consequence_n of_o that_o default_n will_v be_v spoil_v the_o bishop_n that_o that_o pope_n afterward_o shall_v promote_v will_v not_o be_v lawful_a bishop_n the_o priest_n on_o who_o those_o bishop_n have_v confer_v order_n will_v be_v no_o lawful_a priest_n and_o the_o sacrament_n that_o those_o priest_n shall_v administer_v will_v not_o be_v lawful_o administer_v what_o can_v our_o father_n think_v of_o such_o a_o dreadful_a confusion_n which_o they_o know_v not_o how_o to_o undo_v unless_o by_o suppose_v a_o perpetual_a miracle_n which_o be_v that_o god_n shall_v have_v so_o overrule_v the_o intention_n of_o all_o those_o man_n that_o howsoever_o wicked_a athestical_a hypocritical_a or_o profane_a they_o shall_v have_v be_v yet_o that_o not_o one_o of_o they_o nevertheless_o shall_v fail_v in_o have_v a_o intention_n to_o do_v that_o which_o the_o church_n enjoin_v but_o what_o assurance_n have_v we_o
as_o their_o word_n shall_v be_v find_v confirm_v by_o proof_n draw_v from_o the_o scripture_n they_o have_v say_v that_o 7._o they_o do_v not_o care_n for_o the_o testimony_n of_o man_n but_o that_o they_o will_v confirm_v what_o they_o say_v by_o the_o voice_n of_o god_n which_o be_v more_o certain_a than_o all_o demonstration_n or_o to_o say_v better_o the_o only_a demonstration_n it_o be_v evident_a therefore_o that_o our_o father_n can_v not_o take_v any_o other_o rule_n of_o the_o faith_n or_o principle_n of_o the_o reformation_n than_o the_o holy_a scripture_n in_o effect_n the_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n the_o law_n of_o our_o sovereign_a lord_n according_a to_o which_o we_o must_v all_o be_v judge_v pastor_n and_o people_n great_a and_o small_a learned_a and_o ignorant_a it_o contain_v the_o foundation_n of_o divine_a revelation_n without_o which_o there_o be_v neither_o faith_n nor_o a_o good_a conscience_n nor_o peace_n of_o mind_n nor_o hope_v of_o salvation_n and_o if_o they_o will_v consider_v these_o thing_n a_o little_a more_o careful_o than_o they_o ordinary_o do_v i_o be_o persuade_v they_o will_v make_v no_o difference_n with_o we_o about_o this_o article_n all_o christian_n be_v agree_v that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v the_o only_a source_n of_o all_o the_o mystery_n that_o be_v necessary_a to_o our_o belief_n in_o order_n to_o our_o salvation_n and_o that_o his_o will_n be_v the_o only_a rule_n of_o our_o worship_n this_o be_v a_o maxim_n about_o which_o there_o be_v no_o dispute_n between_o we_o and_o those_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n for_o they_o know_v with_o we_o that_o faith_n come_v out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o that_o 15._o it_o be_v in_o vain_a to_o honour_n god_n when_o we_o follow_v the_o commandment_n of_o man_n all_o our_o difference_n consist_v but_o in_o the_o know_v where_o that_o word_n and_o that_o will_n be_v we_o restrain_v it_o to_o the_o scripture_n our_o adversary_n extend_v it_o further_o for_o they_o will_v have_v it_o to_o be_v find_v in_o tradition_n in_o the_o write_n of_o the_o father_n in_o the_o decision_n of_o the_o pope_n in_o the_o determination_n of_o the_o council_n and_o in_o all_o that_o which_o they_o call_v the_o belief_n of_o the_o church_n not_o only_o while_o those_o thing_n be_v conformable_a to_o the_o scripture_n but_o also_o while_o they_o be_v beside_o the_o scripture_n but_o as_o for_o the_o decision_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o council_n our_o adversary_n themselves_o confess_v that_o god_n give_v they_o not_o any_o new_a and_o immediate_a revelation_n that_o discover_v new_a object_n of_o faith_n to_o they_o or_o new_a way_n of_o worship_n and_o that_o since_o jesus_n christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n god_n have_v not_o give_v the_o like_a revelation_n to_o man_n either_o in_o these_o latter_a or_o the_o proceed_n age_n it_o be_v certain_a ses_fw-fr mounseur_fw-fr du_fw-fr val_n his_o word_n be_v set_v down_o by_o mounseur_fw-fr arnaud_n in_o his_o second_o letter_n that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v not_o assist_v the_o pope_n in_o 5._o the_o decision_n of_o point_n of_o faith_n by_o a_o immediate_a and_o express_a illumination_n as_o well_o because_o that_o illumination_n will_v be_v miraculous_a and_o that_o there_o will_v be_v no_o necessity_n of_o establish_v such_o a_o miracle_n as_o because_o that_o no_o pope_n ever_o attempt_v to_o prove_v that_o when_o he_o will_v decide_v any_o matter_n he_o shall_v be_v immediate_o and_o express_o enlighten_v by_o the_o holy_a spirit_n a_o council_n also_o add_v he_o have_v not_o the_o like_a illumination_n or_o ever_o have_v and_o if_o ever_o any_o have_v have_v it_o it_o will_v have_v be_v without_o doubt_n the_o first_o of_o all_o which_o the_o apostle_n hold_v at_o jerusalem_n at_o a_o time_n wherein_o the_o holy_a ghost_n visible_o descend_v upon_o the_o faithful_a and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o the_o apostle_n in_o that_o council_n do_v not_o determine_v any_o point_n of_o difference_n about_o the_o legal_a ceremony_n by_o a_o express_a and_o immediate_a illumination_n but_o after_o a_o long_a debate_n and_o discussion_n it_o be_v therefore_o a_o unquestionable_a truth_n that_o there_o be_v no_o new_a and_o immediate_a revelation_n in_o the_o church_n and_o that_o revelation_n cease_v in_o jesus_n christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n from_o whence_o it_o evident_o follow_v that_o all_o that_o be_v to_o be_v find_v either_o in_o the_o decision_n of_o the_o pope_n or_o in_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o council_n or_o in_o the_o write_n of_o the_o father_n or_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o church_n or_o in_o that_o which_o they_o call_v tradition_n or_o in_o a_o word_n in_o all_o that_o proceed_v from_o the_o mouth_n and_o hand_n of_o man_n whatsoever_o denomination_n they_o may_v pass_v under_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o as_o far_o as_o it_o may_v be_v find_v conformable_a to_o that_o revelation_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n but_o that_o be_v so_o as_o it_o be_v without_o any_o difficulty_n how_o can_v they_o be_v certain_a of_o that_o conformity_n but_o as_o they_o refer_v to_o and_o compare_v thing_n with_o the_o scripture_n they_o say_v that_o there_o be_v certain_a article_n of_o that_o revelation_n which_o the_o apostle_n have_v deliver_v down_o in_o trust_n from_o their_o own_o live_a voice_n alone_o to_o their_o successor_n and_o which_o from_o hand_n to_o hand_n have_v come_v down_o to_o we_o but_o beside_o that_o that_o very_a thing_n be_v a_o matter_n of_o history_n about_o which_o we_o can_v have_v any_o certainty_n of_o faith_n and_o upon_o which_o by_o consequence_n we_o can_v build_v nothing_o firm_o what_o certain_a sign_n can_v they_o give_v we_o to_o know_v those_o pretend_a apostolical_a tradition_n by_o or_o to_o discern_v the_o true_a by_o when_o they_o shall_v be_v mingle_v with_o the_o false_a from_o the_o first_o rise_v of_o christianity_n heretic_n will_v say_v as_o may_v be_v see_v in_o saint_n irenaeus_n to_o gain_v 33._o credit_n to_o their_o error_n that_o they_o have_v be_v the_o secret_a mystery_n which_o the_o apostle_n teach_v not_o to_o all_o in_o common_a but_o to_o the_o perfect_a in_o particular_a papias_n himself_o as_o eusebius_n testify_v have_v make_v a_o collection_n of_o table_n and_o new_a doctrine_n under_o the_o title_n of_o unwritten_a tradition_n which_o he_o have_v learned_a from_o the_o mouth_n of_o those_o who_o have_v see_v the_o apostle_n and_o converse_v familiar_o with_o they_o saint_n 39_o irenaeus_n speak_v of_o a_o certain_a tradition_n which_o have_v pass_v for_o currant_n in_o his_o time_n in_o asia_n as_o immediate_o come_v from_o the_o apostle_n saint_n john_n to_o wit_n that_o jesus_n christ_n teach_v after_o his_o forty_o year_n which_o be_v notwithstanding_o now_o hold_v to_o be_v false_a by_o all_o chronologer_n they_o do_v not_o not_o hold_v the_o opinion_n of_o the_o m●llenaries_n to_o be_v less_o false_a which_o divers_a ancient_a father_n have_v approve_v and_o maintain_v as_o a_o tradition_n proceed_v from_o the_o apostle_n the_o church_n of_o asia_n who_o have_v the_o feast_n of_o easter_n celebrate_v precise_o on_o the_o fourteen_o day_n of_o the_o moon_n age_n after_o the_o vernal_a equinox_n boast_v for_o that_o purpose_n of_o the_o tradition_n of_o saint_n john_n and_o saint_n philip_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o church_n hold_v on_o the_o contrary_a by_o apostolical_a tradition_n that_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v celebrate_v on_o the_o sunday_n of_o our_o lord_n resurrection_n the_o greek_n nestorian_n abassine_n latin_n armenian_n have_v their_o contrary_a tradition_n for_o tradition_n change_v its_o face_n and_o form_n according_a as_o the_o nation_n change_v one_o sort_n hold_v for_o a_o tradition_n the_o necessity_n of_o three_o immersion_n in_o baptism_n and_o that_o of_o the_o use_n of_o leaven_a bread_n in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n and_o the_o other_o mock_n at_o it_o and_o reject_v it_o the_o one_o sort_n believe_v a_o purgatory_n by_o tradition_n the_o other_o believe_v it_o not_o the_o one_o by_o tradition_n circumcise_v their_o child_n the_o other_o have_v that_o practice_n in_o horror_n as_o be_v a_o relic_n of_o judaisme_n the_o one_o sort_n fast_o by_o tradition_n upon_o the_o saturday_n the_o rest_n have_v that_o fast_n in_o execration_n one_o sort_n by_o tradition_n sacrifice_n lamb_n at_o this_o day_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o jew_n the_o rest_n detest_v that_o custom_n who_o can_v say_v just_o in_o so_o great_a a_o confusion_n which_o this_o be_v apostolical_a and_o this_o be_v not_o so_o moreover_o there_o be_v a_o great_a many_o ancient_a tradition_n which_o public_a use_n heretofore_o authorize_v and_o which_o time_n have_v so_o abolish_v that_o there_o remain_v not_o the_o least_o shadow_n of_o they_o among_o the_o latin_n as_o that_o of_o not_o baptise_v
who_o labour_v in_o the_o reformation_n of_o their_o church_n religious_o observe_v they_o constrain_v no_o person_n and_o they_o reject_v nothing_o that_o be_v not_o alien_a to_o the_o christian_a religion_n but_o say_v the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la those_o two_o hundred_o burgher_n of_o a_o swiss_n town_n be_v as_o learned_a and_o ready_a in_o matter_n of_o divinity_n as_o we_o may_v easy_o judge_n swiss_n burgher_n to_o be_v i_o answer_v that_o this_o be_v the_o objection_n of_o the_o pharisee_n this_o people_n say_v the_o enemy_n of_o jesus_n christ_n know_v not_o the_o law_n but_o jesus_n christ_n do_v 21._o not_o answer_v they_o amiss_o when_o he_o say_v to_o they_o father_n i_o thank_v thou_o lord_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n that_o thou_o have_v bid_v these_o thing_n from_o the_o wise_a and_o prudent_a and_o reveal_v they_o unto_o babe_n let_v the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la if_o he_o will_v be_v of_o the_o number_n of_o those_o wise_a and_o prudent_a one_o we_o shall_v not_o envy_v he_o his_o readiness_n and_o his_o learning_n and_o we_o shall_v rest_v satisfy_v with_o this_o that_o it_o have_v please_v god_n to_o place_v we_o in_o the_o same_o rank_n with_o those_o mean_a swiss_n burgher_n to_o who_o as_o much_o babe_n as_o they_o be_v god_n vouschafe_v to_o make_v his_o gospel_n know_v the_o true_a knowledge_n of_o christian_n do_v not_o consist_v in_o have_v a_o head_n full_a of_o scholastic_a speculation_n and_o a_o memory_n load_v with_o a_o great_a many_o history_n and_o multitude_n of_o passage_n of_o divers_a author_n or_o a_o great_a many_o critical_a notion_n nor_o in_o have_v well-studied_n lombard_n albertus_n magnus_n thomas_n aquinas_n scotus_n bonaventure_n capreolus_n aegidius_n romanus_n occam_n gabriel_n biel_n the_o canon_n law_n the_o decretal_n and_o all_o those_o other_o great_a name_n wherewith_o they_o stun_v the_o people_n in_o time_n past_a our_o true_a knowledge_n be_v the_o holy_a scripture_n read_v with_o humility_n charity_n faith_n and_o piety_n see_v here_o all_o that_o those_o poor_a burgher_n of_o zurich_n know_v they_o be_v neither_o prelate_n nor_o cardinal_n nor_o doctor_n of_o louvain_n nor_o of_o the_o sorbonne_n but_o they_o be_v good_a man_n they_o fear_v god_n they_o study_v his_o word_n and_o for_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o state_n of_o their_o understanding_n and_o the_o degree_n of_o their_o light_n may_v appear_v by_o the_o reformation_n which_o they_o make_v for_o the_o tree_n may_v be_v know_v by_o its_o fruit_n 4._o objection_n the_o matter_n which_o be_v to_o have_v be_v handle_v in_o that_o pretend_a synod_n can_v be_v more_o considerable_a for_o they_o treat_v therein_o about_o abolish_n all_o at_o once_o the_o authority_n of_o all_o the_o council_n that_o be_v hold_v in_o the_o church_n since_o the_o apostle_n day_n under_o a_o pretence_n of_o reduce_v all_o to_o the_o scripture_n answer_v since_o the_o true_a authority_n of_o the_o father_n and_o council_n consist_v in_o their_o conformity_n with_o the_o divine_a write_n the_o way_n solid_o to_o establish_v they_o be_v to_o reduce_v all_o to_o the_o scripture_n as_o they_o do_v in_o that_o synod_n if_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la pretend_v to_o give_v the_o father_n and_o council_n and_o authority_n quite_o different_a from_o that_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n whereof_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v the_o minister_n and_o interpreter_n we_o may_v answer_v he_o that_o he_o affront_v they_o under_o a_o pretence_n of_o honour_v they_o for_o as_o it_o be_v the_o great_a real_a injury_n that_o can_v be_v do_v to_o a_o subject_a to_o give_v he_o the_o authority_n of_o his_o prince_n so_o it_o be_v the_o most_o real_a injury_n which_o they_o can_v do_v to_o the_o father_n to_o invest_v they_o with_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n 5._o objection_n they_o meddle_v with_o the_o faith_n of_o all_o the_o other_o christian_a church_n which_o the_o swisser_n can_v not_o but_o condemn_v in_o embrace_v a_o new_a faith_n answer_v the_o swiss_n do_v not_o embrace_v a_o new_a faith_n but_o they_o renounce_v those_o error_n that_o it_o may_v be_v may_v have_v prevail_v for_o some_o age_n but_o which_o be_v new_a in_o regard_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n they_o do_v not_o condemn_v other_o church_n in_o that_o which_o they_o have_v of_o good_a but_o they_o condemn_v that_o evil_n which_o they_o have_v in_o they_o a_o sick_a person_n who_o have_v cure_v himself_o condemn_v the_o disease_n of_o other_o but_o he_o condemn_v not_o that_o life_n which_o remain_v in_o they_o on_o the_o contrary_n he_o exhort_v they_o to_o be_v heal_v for_o fear_v least_o remain_v in_o that_o sick_a condition_n they_o shall_v die_v 6._o object_n they_o treat_v about_o all_o those_o dangerous_a consequence_n which_o that_o change_n of_o religion_n will_v have_v produce_v and_o which_o be_v easy_a to_o have_v be_v foresee_v answ_n they_o treat_v also_o about_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o their_o own_o salvation_n and_o all_o those_o dangerous_a consequence_n which_o can_v 243._o not_o but_o come_v from_o the_o blindness_n and_o passion_n of_o those_o who_o will_v hold_v the_o people_n of_o god_n under_o their_o servitude_n ought_v not_o to_o have_v prevail_v over_o two_o such_o great_a interest_n as_o that_o of_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o man_n salvation_n all_o these_o objection_n be_v well_o near_o the_o same_o that_o the_o pagan_n make_v against_o the_o primitive_a christian_n and_o it_o seem_v that_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la have_v study_v they_o out_o of_o celsus_n prophyrie_n and_o julian_n to_o make_v use_n of_o they_o against_o we_o 7._o object_n moreover_o they_o declare_v that_o they_o will_v have_v man_n make_v use_v of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n only_o and_o by_o that_o rash_a 244._o and_o unheard_a of_o prejudice_n they_o condemn_v the_o procedure_n of_o all_o the_o forego_n council_n wherein_o they_o be_v wont_a to_o produce_v the_o opinion_n of_o the_o father_n to_o decide_v the_o controvert_v question_n answ_n the_o scripture_n be_v the_o only_a rule_n of_o the_o faith_n of_o christian_n and_o there_o be_v no_o other_o but_o that_o alone_a who_o authority_n we_o ought_v to_o admit_v as_o sovereign_n and_o decisive_a of_o controversy_n it_o be_v not_o true_a that_o all_o the_o forego_n council_n admit_v of_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o father_n and_o their_o tradition_n under_o that_o quality_n the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudice_n lay_v it_o down_o without_o proof_n and_o reason_n 8._o object_n the_o church_n be_v in_o possession_n of_o its_o doctrine_n they_o 244._o ought_v to_o have_v force_v zuinglius_fw-la to_o produce_v his_o accusation_n against_o that_o doctrine_n and_o to_o have_v make_v the_o proof_n which_o he_o allege_v against_o it_o to_o have_v be_v examine_v but_o in_o stead_n of_o that_o they_o order_v that_o he_o shall_v appear_v in_o that_o disputation_n in_o quality_n of_o defender_n and_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v the_o other_o part_n to_o convince_v he_o if_o error_n answ_n if_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n will_v have_v the_o world_n believe_v the_o doctrine_n that_o she_o teach_v it_o be_v fit_a she_o shall_v furnish_v it_o with_o proof_n and_o her_o pretend_a possession_n can_v assure_v it_o those_o who_o propound_v any_o thing_n as_o matter_n of_o faith_n be_v natural_o bind_v to_o prove_v it_o and_o it_o be_v absurd_a to_o say_v that_o possession_n discharge_v that_o obligation_n for_o the_o faith_n ought_v to_o be_v always_o found_v upon_o proof_n and_o it_o never_o stand_v upon_o mere_a possession_n otherwise_o the_o heathen_n ought_v to_o have_v keep_v their_o religion_n which_o be_v establish_v on_o so_o ancient_a a_o possession_n 9_o object_n all_o that_o examination_n be_v further_o ground_v upon_o this_o ridiculous_a principle_n that_o if_o there_o can_v not_o be_v find_v any_o person_n within_o the_o territory_n of_o zurich_n that_o can_v make_v the_o error_n of_o zuinglius_fw-la appear_v by_o the_o scripture_n it_o ought_v to_o be_v conclude_v that_o he_o have_v none_o as_o if_o the_o weakness_n of_o those_o who_o oppose_v his_o doctrine_n can_v not_o be_v a_o effect_n of_o their_o ignorance_n rather_o than_o a_o default_n in_o the_o cause_n they_o defend_v answ_n this_o objection_n be_v no_o more_o to_o the_o purpose_n then_o the_o forego_n what_o can_v the_o senate_n of_o zurich_n have_v do_v more_o then_o to_o have_v assemble_v all_o the_o clergy_n of_o their_o state_n to_o have_v call_v the_o bishop_n of_o constance_n or_o his_o deputy_n thither_o to_o have_v receive_v all_o the_o world_n and_o give_v all_o liberty_n of_o propound_v their_o argument_n and_o proof_n it_o belong_v to_o they_o to_o propound_v they_o if_o they_o have_v any_o and_o if_o they_o have_v none_o they_o ought_v to_o have_v acknowledge_v that_o till_o than_o
learned_a the_o one_o extend_v its_o use_n unto_o all_o that_o be_v necessary_a for_o instruction_n and_o the_o conduct_n of_o life_n and_o the_o other_o in_o heap_v up_o of_o general_a difficulty_n make_v it_o unprofitable_a to_o instruct_v we_o in_o the_o least_o truth_n what_o judgement_n can_v we_o make_v of_o this_o diversity_n unless_o this_o that_o the_o language_n of_o these_o gentleman_n change_v according_a to_o the_o difference_n of_o time_n and_o interest_n as_o one_o have_v say_v of_o they_o elsewhere_o when_o the_o case_n be_v about_o gain_v credit_n to_o their_o translation_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n they_o speak_v as_o advantageous_o of_o the_o scripture_n as_o it_o be_v possible_a for_o they_o to_o speak_v and_o when_o the_o business_n be_v to_o oppose_v a_o reformation_n make_v according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o scripture_n but_o which_o notwithstanding_o have_v not_o the_o happiness_n of_o their_o agreement_n you_o see_v what_o they_o say_v of_o that_o same_o scripture_n the_o scripture_n shall_v then_o to_o speak_v proper_o be_v only_o to_o be_v commend_v by_o the_o interest_n of_o their_o translation_n and_o as_o long_o as_o that_o interest_n shall_v remain_v shall_v be_v the_o collection_n of_o the_o divine_a teach_n mons._n of_o our_o lord_n the_o testament_n that_o assure_v we_o of_o the_o inheritance_n of_o our_o father_n the_o mouth_n of_o jesus_n christ_n who_o although_o he_o be_v in_o heaven_n speak_v continual_o upon_o earth_n not_o only_o the_o nourishment_n of_o sound_a soul_n and_o those_o who_o be_v establish_v in_o grace_n as_o the_o body_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n but_o even_o the_o consolation_n of_o sinner_n the_o light_n of_o the_o blind_a the_o remedy_n of_o the_o sick_a and_o the_o life_n of_o the_o dead_a for_o these_o be_v the_o title_n that_o the_o preface_n give_v it_o but_o whenever_o that_o interest_n shall_v cease_v those_o praise_n shall_v do_v so_o too_o and_o it_o shall_v be_v nothing_o but_o a_o ridiculous_a way_n and_o impossible_a for_o the_o instruct_v of_o man_n in_o the_o truth_n i_o will_v therefore_o very_o fain_o know_v of_o these_o gentleman_n whether_o it_o be_v only_o upon_o the_o sight_n of_o their_o translation_n that_o s._n cyprian_n s._n augustine_n and_o s._n gregory_n write_v that_o which_o the_o preface_n relate_v or_o whether_o those_o father_n do_v not_o consider_v the_o scripture_n in_o itself_o for_o if_o it_o be_v the_o first_o they_o forget_v to_o tell_v we_o that_o they_o only_o speak_v out_o of_o a_o prophetic_a spirit_n of_o that_o translation_n and_o if_o it_o be_v the_o second_o why_o have_v they_o entertain_v we_o with_o that_o admirable_a proportion_n of_o the_o scripture_n to_o great_a and_o small_a to_o the_o strong_a and_o weak_a and_o that_o easy_a and_o intelligible_a manner_n wherewith_o it_o propound_v to_o we_o all_o that_o be_v necessary_a for_o the_o conduct_n of_o our_o life_n since_o that_o without_o the_o translation_n of_o mons_fw-la it_o be_v a_o infinite_a way_n which_o have_v no_o end_n a_o ridiculous_a way_n and_o impossible_a to_o instruct_v man_n in_o the_o truth_n what_o can_v the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la say_v to_o defend_v himself_o from_o this_o manifest_a contradiction_n which_o he_o discover_v between_o he_o and_o his_o colleague_n will_v he_o say_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v in_o truth_n a_o good_a mean_n for_o the_o instruction_n of_o man_n but_o that_o it_o be_v so_o only_o with_o the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o father_n but_o the_o author_n of_o that_o preface_n speak_v for_o scripture_n alone_o separate_v from_o the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o father_n such_o as_o its_o translation_n be_v for_o he_o excuse_v himself_o in_o that_o he_o have_v not_o make_v a_o collection_n of_o note_n and_o explanation_n draw_v out_o of_o the_o write_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n and_o he_o do_v not_o fail_v to_o say_v that_o in_o his_o translation_n as_o plain_a as_o it_o be_v not_o only_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o more_o learned_a but_o of_o the_o more_o simple_a also_o and_o unlearned_a may_v find_v that_o which_o will_v be_v necessary_a for_o their_o instruction_n will_v he_o say_v that_o he_o do_v not_o mean_a to_o exclude_v the_o learned_a from_o the_o use_n of_o the_o scripture_n but_o only_o the_o more_o simple_a for_o the_o instruction_n of_o which_o former_a he_o do_v not_o deny_v but_o that_o it_o will_v be_v a_o most_o proper_a mean_n but_o beside_o that_o his_o brother_n speak_v formal_o of_o the_o instruction_n of_o the_o more_o simple_a why_o have_v the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la make_v it_o a_o ridiculous_a and_o impossible_a way_n a_o infinite_a way_n which_o have_v no_o issue_n a_o way_n which_o be_v of_o so_o excessive_a a_o length_n that_o one_o can_v never_o rational_o hope_v to_o come_v to_o the_o end_n of_o it_o whatsoever_o diligence_n one_o shall_v make_v will_v he_o say_v that_o the_o scripture_n ought_v to_o be_v join_v with_o tradition_n and_o that_o without_o tradition_n it_o can_v give_v a_o perfect_a instruction_n but_o the_o preface_n say_v express_o that_o they_o will_v find_v in_o that_o translation_n all_o that_o will_v be_v necessary_a for_o instruction_n will_v he_o say_v that_o in_o order_n to_o the_o scripture_n instruct_v one_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o church_n ought_v to_o be_v add_v to_o it_o but_o the_o preface_n say_v that_o according_a to_o saint_n augustine_n the_o scripture_n lay_v down_o all_o that_o be_v necessary_a for_o the_o conduct_n of_o our_o life_n after_o a_o most_o easy_a and_o intelligible_a manner_n and_o that_o she_o explain_v and_o make_v clear_v herself_o will_v he_o say_v that_o in_o order_n to_o the_o scripture_n be_v capable_a to_o instruct_v we_o we_o ought_v at_o least_o to_o read_v it_o with_o dependence_n upon_o the_o church_n and_o to_o take_v it_o from_o her_o hand_n but_o wherefore_o then_o will_v these_o gentleman_n have_v the_o people_n to_o read_v their_o translation_n since_o they_o be_v only_o private_a doctor_n and_o not_o the_o church_n wherefore_o when_o the_o prelate_n raise_v to_o the_o high_a dignity_n have_v forbid_v the_o read_n of_o it_o by_o their_o ordinance_n have_v we_o see_v print_v write_n maintain_v on_o the_o contrary_a there_o be_v in_o those_o ordinance_n a_o threaten_v of_o the_o will_n and_o commandment_n of_o god_n who_o will_v that_o we_o shall_v hear_v his_o son_n and_o not_o that_o we_o shall_v 23._o suppress_v his_o gospel_n a_o contradiction_n to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o be_v set_v down_o in_o write_v for_o no_o other_o end_n but_o to_o be_v hear_v and_o practise_v by_o all_o nation_n of_o the_o world_n a_o contradiction_n of_o all_o the_o council_n which_o have_v always_o take_v the_o scripture_n for_o the_o judge_n of_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o church_n and_o of_o all_o the_o difficulty_n and_o question_n that_o can_v arise_v in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n or_o manner_n a_o contradiction_n of_o all_o the_o holy_a father_n who_o advise_v the_o faithful_a above_o all_o thing_n continual_o to_o read_v the_o word_n of_o god_n why_o have_v one_o introduce_v two_o layman_n parishioner_n saint_n hilary_n montanus_n say_v one_o to_o another_o the_o bishop_n can_v 2._o take_v away_o from_o we_o the_o gospel_n that_o jesus_n christ_n have_v give_v we_o that_o god_n speak_v to_o all_o his_o people_n when_o he_o say_v to_o day_n if_o you_o will_v hear_v my_o voice_n harden_v not_o your_o heart_n a_o bishop_n can_v take_v away_o our_o eye_n from_o we_o to_o hinder_v we_o from_o see_v and_o consider_v our_o way_n we_o shall_v not_o see_v jesus_n christ_n our_o saviour_n our_o pastor_n and_o our_o great_a bishop_n who_o go_v before_o we_o in_o his_o gospel_n that_o if_o a_o bishop_n will_v turn_v we_o away_o from_o if_o a_o apostle_n if_o a_o angel_n from_o heaven_n will_v stop_v up_o this_o way_n and_o will_v go_v about_o to_o lead_v and_o guide_v we_o in_o another_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o believe_v he_o why_o have_v he_o make_v we_o see_v those_o parishioner_n hold_v that_o 3._o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o contrary_a to_o the_o gospel_n than_o a_o prohibition_n to_o read_v and_o have_v it_o that_o bread_n and_o nourishment_n be_v not_o more_o necessary_a to_o preserve_v the_o life_n of_o the_o body_n than_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v to_o maintain_v life_n in_o our_o 25._o soul_n that_o all_o christian_n have_v a_o natural_a right_n that_o can_v be_v take_v from_o they_o of_o instruct_v themselves_o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o labour_v to_o understand_v it_o and_o that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v give_v to_o the_o whole_a 9_o church_n and_o not_o only_o to_o the_o bishop_n who_o have_v no_o right_a to_o deprive_v the_o faithful_a of_o they_o that_o this_o be_v say_v they_o what_o the_o devil_n will_v preach_v up_o if_o he_o be_v
render_v it_o incapable_a to_o defend_v the_o truth_n i_o pass_v over_o in_o silence_n a_o multitude_n of_o other_o thing_n which_o sensible_o show_v we_o the_o falseness_n of_o that_o pretence_n of_o rome_n such_o as_o be_v the_o lapse_n of_o marcellinus_n and_o liberius_n the_o contradictory_n decision_n of_o divers_a pope_n their_o inconstancy_n their_o capricious_a humour_n their_o interest_v judgement_n and_o i_o know_v not_o how_o many_o other_o character_n incompatible_a with_o a_o true_a rule_n of_o faith_n it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o know_v that_o that_o pretence_n have_v never_o be_v public_o receive_v in_o france_n and_o that_o our_o king_n and_o our_o parliament_n have_v always_o most_o vehement_o oppose_v it_o as_o to_o the_o prelate_n and_o the_o other_o ecclesiastic_n after_o the_o sad_a description_n that_o we_o have_v give_v of_o their_o state_n in_o the_o day_n of_o our_o father_n and_o many_o age_n before_o they_o there_o be_v no_o likelihood_n that_o they_o can_v yet_o further_o with_o the_o least_o shadow_n of_o reason_n propose_v they_o as_o a_o just_a rule_n of_o faith_n which_o way_n soever_o they_o be_v consider_v whether_o in_o general_n or_o in_o particular_a whether_o separate_v or_o assemble_v together_o their_o ignorance_n their_o negligence_n in_o spiritual_a thing_n their_o sink_v into_o vice_n their_o excessive_a love_n of_o the_o world_n and_o in_o a_o word_n all_o that_o which_o we_o have_v have_v see_v in_o they_o will_v not_o permit_v we_o to_o believe_v that_o we_o shall_v be_v bind_v to_o trust_v absolute_o to_o their_o word_n about_o the_o subject_a of_o the_o reformation_n they_o have_v give_v but_o too_o many_o mark_n that_o they_o be_v subject_a to_o error_n since_o the_o great_a part_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v to_o be_v reform_v come_v from_o they_o or_o from_o those_o who_o go_v before_o they_o and_o beside_o that_o they_o be_v themselves_o express_v party_n in_o that_o affair_n consider_v the_o complaint_n that_o they_o make_v of_o they_o and_o that_o they_o be_v engage_v to_o uphold_v the_o superstition_n in_o which_o they_o have_v hold_v the_o people_n we_o be_v not_o ignorant_a that_o they_o have_v a_o servile_a dependence_n on_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n to_o which_o they_o be_v bind_v by_o oath_n that_o they_o will_v no_o stir_v nor_o speak_v nor_o act_n but_o according_a to_o her_o inspiration_n and_o her_o order_n as_o experience_n have_v justify_v it_o to_o we_o in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n in_o fine_a their_o prelate_n be_v man_n and_o such_o man_n as_o have_v make_v the_o church_n to_o fall_v into_o that_o lamentable_a corruption_n out_o of_o which_o our_o father_n seek_v to_o get_v out_o and_o how_o can_v they_o take_v they_o for_o a_o infallible_a rule_n as_o for_o that_o which_o respect_v the_o people_n if_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la be_v as_o be_v report_v the_o author_n of_o the_o treatise_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n of_o the_o faith_n he_o will_v it_o may_v be_v fain_o make_v they_o pass_v with_o we_o for_o infallible_a and_o give_v they_o to_o we_o to_o be_v the_o rule_n of_o our_o faith_n but_o we_o have_v show_v he_o often_o enough_o already_o that_o he_o be_v deceive_v in_o his_o opinion_n what_o be_v there_o more_o liable_a to_o deceive_v they_o and_o more_o to_o incline_v they_o to_o abuse_n and_o superstition_n than_o the_o people_n and_o above_o all_o a_o people_n ignorant_a of_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o gospel_n such_o as_o be_v for_o a_o long_a time_n that_o of_o the_o latin_a church_n how_o can_v a_o people_n that_o ought_v themselves_o to_o undo_v the_o false_a prepossession_n with_o which_o they_o have_v be_v imbue_v serve_v for_o the_o rule_n of_o a_o reformation_n but_o some_o will_v say_v if_o there_o have_v be_v nothing_o in_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n capable_a of_o be_v a_o rule_n of_o faith_n why_o do_v your_o father_n demand_n a_o council_n to_o hear_v their_o complaint_n and_o give_v they_o a_o remedy_n i_o answer_v that_o our_o father_n demand_v a_o council_n not_o such_o a_o one_o as_o that_o of_o trent_n make_v up_o of_o the_o creature_n of_o the_o pope_n who_o wait_v for_o the_o holy_a ghost_n come_v from_o rome_n in_o a_o cloak-bag_n as_o the_o roman_a catholic_n have_v reproach_v they_o but_o such_o a_o free_a council_n as_o wherein_o they_o may_v yet_o have_v hope_v that_o god_n will_v have_v preside_v and_o his_o word_n have_v be_v hear_v they_o demand_v it_o not_o as_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n blind_o to_o submit_v their_o conscience_n to_o all_o that_o which_o shall_v be_v there_o determine_v for_o they_o well_o know_v that_o they_o owe_v that_o submission_n only_o to_o god_n but_o as_o a_o humane_a ordinary_a mean_n in_o the_o church_n that_o christian_a charity_n and_o the_o love_n of_o order_n make_v they_o desire_n to_o try_v if_o they_o can_v not_o by_o that_o way_n re-establish_a the_o purity_n of_o the_o gospel_n in_o the_o west_n by_o the_o way_n of_o the_o scripture_n i_o acknowledge_v that_o there_o have_v lie_v a_o great_a difficulty_n in_o the_o choice_n of_o person_n but_o if_o yet_o notwithstanding_o they_o will_v have_v proceed_v sincere_o in_o it_o and_o in_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n without_o let_v the_o interest_n of_o flesh_n and_o blood_n enter_v in_o the_o difficulty_n be_v not_o unconquerable_a passion_n contention_n a_o spirit_n of_o division_n be_v not_o as_o yet_o general_o spread_v over_o all_o they_o be_v not_o as_o yet_o so_o obstinate_a in_o error_n as_o they_o have_v be_v since_o all_o the_o learned_a man_n that_o be_v then_o in_o it_o acknowledge_v the_o necessity_n of_o a_o reformation_n and_o desire_v it_o they_o have_v therefore_o a_o ground_n to_o demand_v a_o free_a council_n and_o these_o who_o know_v history_n be_v not_o ignorant_a that_o to_o elude_v that_o demand_n which_o appear_v to_o all_o the_o world_n to_o be_v so_o just_a and_o reasonable_a that_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n think_v it_o needful_a to_o make_v use_n of_o the_o most_o deep_a and_o imperceptible_a piece_n of_o its_o policy_n but_o howsoever_o it_o be_v there_o be_v a_o great_a difference_n between_o a_o council_n that_o shall_v submit_v itself_o to_o and_o rule_v itself_o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o between_o a_o rule_n of_o faith_n our_o father_n may_v very_o well_o demand_v the_o first_o and_o expect_v to_o obtain_v it_o although_o he_o state_n of_o the_o church_n be_v then_o extreme_o corrupt_v for_o there_o be_v yet_o some_o good_a desire_n which_o without_o doubt_n will_v have_v wrought_v some_o effect_n if_o they_o have_v not_o be_v stifle_v or_o turn_v aside_o but_o it_o do_v not_o follow_v from_o thence_o that_o they_o must_v after_o what_o manner_n soever_o have_v take_v that_o church_n for_o the_o sovereign_n and_o infallible_a rule_n of_o their_o religion_n they_o will_v not_o have_v more_o reason_n to_o say_v that_o we_o ought_v to_o turn_v to_o the_o side_n of_o tradition_n which_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n have_v raise_v to_o the_o same_o honour_n and_o authority_n with_o the_o scripture_n we_o shall_v quick_o see_v which_o ought_v to_o have_v be_v believe_v it_o shall_v suffice_v to_o say_v here_o that_o although_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o roman_a tradition_n be_v new_a as_o the_o protestant_n have_v often_o demonstrate_v they_o to_o be_v yet_o that_o in_o the_o age_n of_o our_o father_n which_o be_v as_o it_o be_v the_o sink_n of_o the_o forego_n there_o be_v scarce_o any_o error_n nor_o any_o superstition_n how_o gross_a soever_o that_o they_o do_v not_o labour_v to_o defend_v under_o the_o pretence_n of_o tradition_n so_o that_o tradition_n be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v able_a to_o serve_v for_o a_o rule_n that_o it_o ought_v itself_o to_o be_v correct_v and_o regulate_v according_a to_o that_o maxim_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o the_o beginning_n it_o be_v not_o so_o as_o to_o the_o ancient_a father_n i_o confess_v that_o their_o write_n may_v be_v of_o great_a use_n to_o learned_a man_n to_o furnish_v they_o with_o a_o great_a measure_n of_o knowledge_n but_o they_o can_v never_o have_v authority_n sufficient_a to_o serve_v for_o a_o rule_n of_o faith_n the_o father_n be_v man_n subject_a to_o error_n to_o prejudices_fw-la and_o surprise_v as_o well_o as_o other_o man_n and_o there_o appear_v but_o too_o many_o sign_n of_o it_o in_o their_o write_n they_o have_v submit_v themselves_o to_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n they_o have_v call_v it_o the_o balance_n and_o exact_a rule_n of_o all_o thing_n a_o sure_a anchor_n and_o foundation_n of_o the_o faith_n they_o have_v take_v synops._n in_o their_o controversy_n jesus_n christ_n speak_v in_o his_o gospel_n for_o their_o judge_n they_o have_v exhort_v their_o hearer_n and_o their_o reader_n to_o believe_v they_o only_o so_o far_o
that_o every_o society_n which_o have_v not_o that_o extension_n be_v not_o the_o church_n so_o that_o this_o reason_n be_v always_o sound_a your_o society_n be_v shut_v up_o in_o a_o little_a part_n of_o the_o world_n therefore_o it_o be_v not_o the_o church_n and_o that_o it_o be_v by_o this_o principle_n that_o s._n augustine_n have_v dispute_v against_o the_o donatist_n and_o convince_v they_o of_o schism_n this_o be_v the_o sum_n of_o his_o eight_o chapter_n in_o the_o nine_o he_o labour_v to_o apply_v these_o general_a maxim_n to_o our_o separation_n and_o 1._o he_o say_v that_o our_o communion_n be_v not_o spread_v over_o all_o the_o world_n any_o more_o than_o that_o of_o the_o donatist_n and_o that_o not_o have_v that_o visible_a extension_n which_o be_v the_o perpetual_a mark_n of_o the_o true_a church_n it_o follow_v that_o it_o be_v not_o so_o and_o by_o consequence_n that_o we_o be_v all_o schismatic_n 2._o he_o say_v we_o carry_v the_o principle_n of_o the_o donatist_n much_o high_o than_o those_o schismatic_n stretch_v it_o for_o as_o for_o they_o they_o do_v not_o say_v that_o there_o ever_o be_v a_o time_n in_o which_o the_o church_n have_v whole_o fall_v into_o apostasic_a and_o that_o they_o except_v the_o communion_n of_o donatus_n but_o as_o for_o we_o we_o will_v have_v it_o that_o there_o have_v be_v whole_a age_n in_o which_o all_o the_o world_n have_v general_o apostatise_v and_o lose_v the_o faith_n and_o treasure_n of_o salvation_n 3._o he_o labour_v to_o show_v that_o the_o society_n of_o the_o berengarian_o of_o the_o waldenses_n and_o albigenses_n etc._n etc._n in_o who_o he_o say_v we_o shut_v up_o the_o church_n can_v not_o be_v this_o catholic_n church_n of_o which_o s._n augustine_n speak_v and_o last_o he_o conclude_v from_o thence_o that_o we_o be_v schismatic_n and_o by_o consequence_n out_o of_o a_o state_n of_o salvation_n before_o we_o enter_v upon_o the_o particular_a examination_n of_o the_o proposition_n whereof_o this_o objection_n be_v make_v up_o it_o will_v be_v good_a to_o note_v that_o there_o be_v nothing_o new_a in_o all_o that_o and_o that_o it_o be_v nothing_o but_o that_o some_o mark_n of_o visible_a extension_n that_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o controversial_a writer_n of_o the_o roman_a communion_n have_v be_v wont_a to_o propound_v when_o they_o will_v give_v the_o mark_n of_o the_o true_a church_n there_o be_v this_o only_a difference_n to_o be_v find_v in_o it_o that_o the_o other_o labour_n to_o ground_v this_o upon_o what_o they_o produce_v out_o of_o the_o passage_n of_o the_o scripture_n whereas_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la ground_n his_o argument_n upon_o the_o sole_a authority_n of_o s._n augustine_n and_o some_o father_n but_o when_o it_o shall_v be_v true_a that_o s._n augustine_n and_o the_o african_a father_n dispute_v against_o the_o donatist_n shall_v have_v press_v this_o visible_a extension_n of_o the_o church_n too_o much_o and_o urge_v it_o further_o than_o they_o ought_v will_v the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la believe_v that_o he_o ought_v to_o hold_v all_o those_o thing_n that_o the_o father_n have_v advance_v in_o their_o dispute_n for_o infallible_a and_o all_o their_o reason_n and_o hypothesis_n to_o have_v be_v so_o do_v he_o not_o know_v what_o theodoret_n himself_o who_o be_v a_o father_n have_v note_v concern_v some_o of_o 3_o those_o who_o be_v before_o he_o that_o the_o vehemence_n of_o disputation_n have_v make_v they_o fall_v into_o excess_n just_a as_o those_o who_o will_v rectify_v a_o crooked_a tree_n turn_v it_o too_o much_o on_o the_o other_o side_n from_o that_o straightness_n which_o it_o ought_v to_o have_v and_o be_v he_o ignorant_a of_o what_o s._n athanasius_n say_v concern_v dionysius_n of_o alexandria_n who_o authority_n the_o arian_n object_v alex._n to_o he_o that_o dionysius_n have_v say_v so_o not_o with_o design_n to_o make_v a_o simple_a exposition_n of_o his_o faith_n but_o occasional_o have_v a_o respect_n to_o the_o time_n and_o person_n that_o a_o gardener_n be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v fault_n with_o if_o he_o cultivate_v his_o tree_n according_a to_o the_o quality_n of_o the_o soil_n sow_v one_o plant_v another_o prune_v this_o and_o pluck_v up_o that_o we_o must_v say_v s._n jerome_n distinguish_v between_o the_o different_a kind_n of_o writing_n and_o especial_o pammach_n of_o polemical_a and_o dogmatical_a for_o in_o the_o polemical_a the_o dispute_n be_v vagous_n and_o when_o they_o answer_v to_o a_o adversary_n they_o propound_v sometime_o one_o thing_n and_o sometime_o another_o they_o argue_v as_o they_o think_v fit_a they_o say_v one_o thing_n and_o do_v another_o or_o as_o the_o proverb_n say_v they_o offer_v bread_n and_o give_v one_o a_o stone_n but_o in_o the_o dogmatical_a on_o the_o contrary_a they_o speak_v open_o and_o ingenuous_o we_o may_v easy_o apprehend_v by_o that_o that_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o hold_v for_o canonical_a all_o that_o the_o father_n may_v have_v write_v in_o the_o heat_n of_o their_o dispute_n or_o to_o take_v what_o they_o have_v say_v according_a to_o the_o rigour_n of_o the_o letter_n since_o they_o themselves_o acknowledge_v that_o have_v the_o pen_n in_o their_o hand_n they_o often_o advance_v thing_n that_o on_o other_o occasion_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v press_v so_o that_o though_o it_o shall_v be_v true_a that_o s._n augustine_n and_o the_o african_a father_n have_v make_v that_o visible_a extension_n a_o inseparable_a and_o perpetual_a mark_n of_o the_o true_a church_n yet_o we_o shall_v not_o fear_v to_o say_v in_o respect_n of_o they_o what_o s._n augustine_n himself_o have_v say_v concern_v s._n cyprian_n who_o the_o donatist_n object_v to_o he_o i_o do_v not_o 32._o hold_v the_o write_n of_o cyprian_n for_o canonical_a but_o i_o examine_v they_o by_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n that_o which_o i_o find_v in_o they_o conformable_a to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n i_o receive_v with_o praise_v he_o and_o i_o reject_v with_o the_o respect_n that_o i_o owe_v to_o his_o person_n what_o i_o find_v in_o they_o disagree_v thereto_o we_o shall_v make_v no_o scruple_n to_o apply_v to_o they_o what_o the_o same_o s._n augustine_n 48._o have_v say_v on_o the_o subject_n of_o s._n hilary_n and_o some_o other_o father_n who_o they_o allege_v to_o he_o we_o must_v thorough_o distinguish_v these_o sort_n of_o write_n from_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o canonical_a book_n for_o however_o we_o shall_v read_v they_o yet_o we_o can_v draw_v convince_a testimony_n from_o they_o and_o it_o be_v allow_v we_o to_o depart_v from_o they_o when_o we_o see_v that_o they_o themselves_o have_v depart_v from_o the_o truth_n it_o be_v therefore_o certain_a that_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la have_v but_o weaken_v his_o proof_n when_o instead_o of_o labour_v to_o establish_v it_o on_o the_o scripture_n as_o the_o rest_n have_v do_v he_o restrain_v it_o to_o the_o mere_a authority_n of_o s._n augustine_n and_o some_o father_n we_o have_v think_v that_o we_o ought_v to_o have_v free_o represent_v this_o to_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la to_o oblige_v he_o a_o little_a to_o moderate_v his_o pretension_n for_o he_o imagine_v that_o the_o sole_a authority_n of_o s._n augustine_n and_o some_o father_n be_v enough_o to_o convince_v we_o i_o will_v say_v he_o convince_v they_o we_o have_v frequent_o tell_v he_o already_o and_o shall_v tell_v he_o here_o again_o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o only_a rule_n of_o our_o faith_n that_o we_o do_v not_o acknowledge_v any_o other_o authority_n able_a to_o decide_v the_o dispute_v point_n in_o religion_n than_o that_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o that_o if_o we_o sometime_o dispute_v by_o the_o father_n it_o be_v but_o by_o way_n of_o condescension_n to_o those_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o act_v upon_o their_o own_o principle_n and_o not_o to_o submit_v our_o conscience_n to_o the_o word_n of_o man_n but_o because_o that_o he_o may_v also_o imagine_v under_o a_o pretence_n of_o this_o declaration_n that_o we_o have_v no_o other_o way_n to_o answer_v his_o argument_n i_o shall_v undertake_v to_o answer_v here_o and_o show_v he_o if_o i_o can_v that_o he_o have_v abuse_v the_o authority_n of_o s._n augustine_n and_o that_o he_o have_v neither_o comprise_v or_o have_v a_o mind_n to_o comprehend_v either_o the_o true_a sentiment_n of_o that_o father_n or_o we_o this_o be_v that_o which_o i_o design_v to_o show_v he_o in_o this_o chapter_n and_o in_o the_o follow_v but_o before_o we_o enter_v upon_o this_o matter_n it_o will_v be_v necessary_a to_o clear_v in_o a_o few_o word_n the_o history_n of_o the_o donatist_n and_o to_o represent_v what_o be_v the_o beginning_n of_o their_o quarrel_n and_o what_o their_o separation_n be_v the_o author_n of_o the_o
to_o feed_v the_o people_n with_o their_o superstition_n for_o they_o be_v such_o as_o enslave_v their_o soul_n where_o true_a piety_n will_v have_v ennoble_v and_o free_v man_n from_o that_o yoke_n which_o they_o will_v have_v impose_v on_o we_o further_o if_o any_o will_v more_o particular_o see_v how_o far_o the_o claim_n of_o the_o roman_a see_v go_v they_o need_v but_o to_o read_v what_o augustine_n steuchus_n library-keeper_n to_o the_o pope_n have_v write_v for_o he_o ascribe_v to_o the_o pope_n the_o very_a same_o temporal_a right_n in_o the_o same_o latitude_n wherein_o the_o old_a roman_a empire_n possess_v they_o and_o he_o prove_v from_o the_o register_n of_o gregory_n the_o seven_o that_o spain_n hungary_n england_n denmark_n russia_n croatia_n dalmatia_n arragon_n portugal_n bohemia_n swedland_n norway_n dacia_n do_v all_o heretofore_o belong_v to_o the_o pope_n and_o that_o all_o that_o pepin_n charlemagne_n henry_n and_o other_o emperor_n give_v to_o the_o church_n bring_v he_o not_o any_o new_a right_n but_o only_o set_v he_o in_o the_o possession_n of_o that_o which_o the_o violence_n of_o the_o barbarian_n have_v wrest_v from_o he_o 15._o what_o can_v our_o father_n say_v to_o those_o unjust_a usurpation_n of_o the_o pope_n over_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o church_n over_o which_o they_o pretend_v sovereign_o to_o reign_v to_o have_v authority_n to_o decide_v matter_n of_o faith_n to_o make_v new_a law_n to_o dispense_v with_o the_o ancient_a constitution_n to_o call_v council_n to_o transfer_v they_o from_o one_o place_n to_o another_o to_o authorize_v or_o to_o condemn_v they_o to_o judge_v all_o the_o world_n without_o be_v liable_a to_o be_v judge_v of_o any_o in_o a_o word_n of_o make_v all_o thing_n to_o depend_v on_o their_o power_n and_o bind_v all_o church_n to_o submit_v themselves_o to_o its_o decision_n about_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o rule_n of_o discipline_n not_o only_o with_o a_o bare_a external_a obedience_n but_o with_o a_o real_a acquiescence_n of_o their_o conscience_n by_o reason_n of_o which_o they_o be_v accustom_v as_o they_o practise_v it_o even_o at_o this_o present_a in_o their_o bull_n to_o place_n in_o the_o front_n the_o fullness_n of_o their_o power_n and_o to_o adjoyn_v this_o clause_n that_o no_o man_n shall_v dare_v to_o be_v so_o rash_a as_o to_o infringe_v or_o go_v contrary_a to_o their_o decree_n under_o penalty_n of_o incur_v the_o indignation_n of_o god_n and_o the_o bless_a apostle_n peter_n and_o paul_n i_o know_v there_o be_v some_o that_o sometime_o do_v very_o strong_o oppose_v these_o pretension_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n that_o some_o council_n do_v labour_n to_o repress_v they_o and_o that_o the_o church_n of_o france_n have_v appear_v often_o enough_o jealous_a of_o its_o liberty_n but_o beside_o that_o those_o opposition_n never_o have_v that_o success_n which_o may_v just_o have_v be_v hope_v for_o on_o the_o part_n of_o the_o pope_n who_o almost_o always_o elude_v they_o beside_o that_o i_o say_v they_o do_v but_o serve_v to_o confirm_v the_o prejudices_fw-la of_o our_o father_n by_o daily_o discover_v to_o they_o more_o and_o more_o of_o the_o corruption_n of_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n 16._o what_o can_v they_o judge_v of_o those_o dispensation_n that_o the_o pope_n give_v in_o the_o business_n of_o marriage_n within_o prohibit_v degree_n against_o the_o express_a word_n of_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o in_o the_o case_n of_o vow_n which_o they_o themselves_o hold_v to_o be_v lawful_a and_o in_o divers_a other_o matter_n even_o against_o that_o which_o they_o call_v the_o general_a state_n of_o the_o church_n what_o do_v we_o think_v we_o ought_v to_o say_v at_o present_a say_v gerson_n of_o the_o easiness_n whereby_o dispensation_n be_v give_v by_o the_o pope_n 10._o and_o by_o the_o prelate_n to_o lawful_a oath_n to_o reasonnable_a vow_n to_o a_o vast_a plurality_n of_o benefice_n against_o all_o the_o mind_n or_o as_o he_o speak_v even_o to_o a_o universal_a gainsay_n of_o council_n in_o privilege_n and_o exemption_n that_o destroy_v common_a equity_n who_o can_v reckon_v up_o all_o the_o way_n whereof_o they_o serve_v themselves_o to_o loosen_v the_o force_n of_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n and_o to_o oppose_v and_o destroy_v that_o of_o the_o gospel_n who_o can_v read_v without_o some_o commotion_n that_o which_o innocent_a the_o three_o have_v write_v that_o by_o the_o fullness_n of_o his_o power_n he_o have_v a_o lawful_a power_n to_o dispense_v with_o 4._o that_o that_o be_v beyond_o all_o equity_n and_o that_o that_o the_o glossary_a have_v subjoin_v that_o the_o pope_n can_v dispense_v against_o a_o apostle_n against_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o against_o the_o old_a testament_n in_o the_o case_n of_o tithe_n it_o be_v add_v that_o he_o can_v dispense_v against_o the_o general_a state_n of_o the_o church_n and_o yet_o elsewhere_o the_o gloss_n on_o the_o gloss_n decree_n of_o gratian_n assure_v we_o that_o the_o pope_n may_v sometime_o dispense_v against_o the_o general_n state_n of_o the_o church_n and_o for_o that_o allege_v the_o example_n of_o innocent_a the_o three_o in_o the_o council_n of_o lateran_n 17._o what_o can_v our_o father_n judge_n of_o those_o vast_a abuse_n that_o be_v commit_v in_o dispence_v with_o the_o ecclesiastical_a function_n give_v most_o frequent_o to_o person_n altogether_o unworthy_a and_o uncapable_a and_o sometime_o to_o child_n to_o the_o great_a scandal_n of_o christianity_n which_o complain_v of_o it_o high_o a_o long_a time_n ago_o they_o prefer_v say_v st._n bernard_n little_a schoolboy_n and_o young_a child_n 42._o to_o church_n dignity_n because_o of_o the_o nobility_n of_o their_o birth_n so_o that_o you_o may_v see_v those_o that_o be_v just_o get_v from_o under_o the_o ferula_fw-la go_v to_o command_v priest_n who_o be_v yet_o more_o fit_a to_o escape_v the_o rod_n then_o to_o be_v employ_v in_o government_n for_o they_o be_v far_o more_o sensible_a of_o the_o pleasure_n of_o be_v free_v from_o their_o master_n then_o of_o that_o of_o become_a master_n themselves_o those_o be_v their_o first_o thought_n but_o afterward_o grow_v more_o bold_a they_o very_o soon_o learn_v the_o art_n of_o appropriate_v the_o altar_n to_o themselves_o and_o of_o empty_v the_o purse_n of_o those_o that_o be_v under_o they_o without_o go_v to_o any_o other_o school_n then_o that_o of_o their_o ambition_n and_o their_o covetousness_n how_o few_o may_v one_o find_v now_o a_o day_n of_o those_o who_o be_v raise_v to_o the_o episcopal_a grandeur_n say_v nicholas_n de_fw-fr clemangis_n who_o have_v either_o read_v or_o know_v how_o to_o read_v the_o holy_a scripture_n otherwise_o then_o by_o eccles_n first_o beginning_n to_o read_v they_o have_v never_o touch_v any_o other_o part_n of_o the_o holy_a bible_n than_o the_o cover_v although_o in_o their_o instalment_n they_o swear_v that_o they_o know_v it_o all_o 18._o what_o can_v our_o father_n say_v to_o that_o simony_n which_o be_v every_o where_o open_o exercise_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o all_o thing_n the_o court_n of_o rome_n say_v aeneas_n silvius_n give_v nothing_o without_o money_n it_o sell_v the_o very_a imposition_n of_o hand_n and_o the_o gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 66._o and_o will_v give_v pardon_n of_o sin_n to_o none_o but_o such_o who_o will_v part_v with_o their_o money_n the_o church_n that_o jesus_n christ_n have_v choose_v for_o his_o spouse_n without_o spot_n and_o blemish_n say_v nicholas_n de_fw-fr clemangis_n be_v in_o these_o day_n praesul_fw-la a_o warehouse_n of_o ambition_n and_o business_n of_o theft_n and_o rapine_n the_o sacrament_n and_o all_o order_n even_o to_o that_o of_o the_o priest_n be_v expose_v to_o sale_n for_o money_n they_o bestow_v favour_n dispensation_n licence_n office_n benefice_n they_o sell_v pardon_n of_o sin_n mass_n and_o the_o very_a administration_n of_o our_o lord_n body_n if_o any_o one_o have_v a_o mind_n to_o a_o bishopric_n he_o need_v but_o to_o get_v himself_o furnish_v with_o money_n yet_o not_o a_o little_a sum_n but_o a_o great_a one_o must_v purchase_v such_o a_o great_a title_n he_o need_v but_o to_o empty_v his_o purse_n to_o obtain_v the_o dignity_n that_o he_o seek_v but_o he_o may_v soon_o after_o fill_v it_o again_o with_o advantage_n by_o more_o way_n than_o one_o if_o any_o one_o desire_n to_o be_v make_v a_o prebendary_a or_o a_o priest_n of_o any_o church_n or_o to_o have_v any_o other_o charge_n it_o matter_n not_o whether_o his_o merit_n or_o his_o life_n or_o his_o manner_n be_v know_v but_o it_o be_v very_o requisite_a it_o shall_v be_v know_v how_o much_o money_n he_o have_v for_o according_a as_o he_o have_v that_o he_o must_v have_v his_o hope_n succeed_v such_o be_v the_o complaint_n that_o honest_a man_n make_v in_o those_o day_n and_o
i_o know_v not_o how_o many_o other_o that_o be_v evident_o either_o the_o remnant_n or_o imitation_n of_o ancient_a paganism_n who_o will_v think_v it_o strange_a that_o a_o idea_n of_o a_o religion_n that_o plain_o appear_v to_o be_v so_o little_a advantageous_a to_o it_o or_o to_o say_v better_o which_o be_v so_o contrary_a to_o the_o spirit_n and_o the_o true_a design_n of_o christianity_n shall_v have_v touch_v our_o father_n and_o inspire_v into_o they_o a_o desire_n of_o know_v those_o thing_n a_o little_a more_o particular_o than_o they_o have_v as_o yet_o do_v 3._o they_o be_v yet_o further_o carry_v out_o with_o that_o desire_n when_o they_o consider_v the_o ill_a effect_n that_o those_o ceremony_n borrow_a from_o the_o pagan_n have_v produce_v and_o some_o other_o that_o be_v annex_v to_o they_o as_o rosary_n chaplet_n holy_a salt_n their_o pilgrimage_n and_o and_o monastic_a vow_n and_o such_o like_a thing_n for_o they_o manifest_o fill_v the_o mind_n of_o man_n with_o superstition_n they_o cause_v a_o thousand_o abuse_n among_o the_o people_n they_o ordinary_o make_v way_n for_o lie_a forgery_n and_o which_o render_v they_o yet_o far_o more_o odious_a they_o foment_v a_o too_o natural_a negligence_n which_o every_o one_o have_v for_o work_n of_o true_a and_o solid_a piety_n whether_o by_o busy_v the_o mind_n of_o christian_n too_o much_o or_o persuade_v they_o that_o they_o have_v very_o well_o acquit_v themselves_o of_o their_o duty_n by_o do_v these_o external_n thing_n or_o last_o whether_o it_o be_v by_o infuse_v into_o they_o a_o false_a idea_n of_o divinity_n as_o if_o all_o its_o worship_n do_v consist_v in_o such_o trumpery_n who_o be_v it_o that_o see_v not_o what_o a_o great_a prejudice_n this_o be_v against_o a_o religion_n that_o teach_v such_o thing_n and_o so_o solemn_o enjoin_v they_o to_o be_v practise_v 4._o it_o have_v be_v yet_o very_o hard_o if_o our_o father_n have_v not_o be_v offend_v by_o that_o worldly_a pomp_n wherewith_o they_o see_v religion_n so_o excessive_o clothe_v for_o they_o very_o well_o know_v that_o true_a christianity_n be_v content_v to_o gain_v the_o heart_n and_o soul_n of_o man_n by_o the_o majesty_n of_o its_o doctrine_n and_o holiness_n of_o its_o precept_n and_o that_o for_o the_o rest_n it_o profess_v to_o retain_v its_o simplicity_n notwithstanding_o which_o they_o observe_v a_o clean_a contrary_a character_n in_o the_o magnificence_n of_o their_o tenple_n in_o the_o gold_n of_o their_o tabernacle_n in_o the_o pride_n of_o their_o sacrifice_n in_o the_o riches_n of_o their_o ornament_n and_o in_o general_a in_o all_o that_o external_a splendour_n which_o seem_v destine_v only_o to_o strike_v extraordinary_o the_o sense_n and_o by_o this_o mean_n to_o raise_v a_o ill_a ground_a admiration_n that_o which_o be_v proper_a to_o only_o corrupt_a religion_n which_o as_o tertullian_n take_v notice_n labour_v to_o gain_v their_o authority_n and_o to_o obtain_v the_o belief_n of_o the_o people_n by_o their_o baptismo_fw-la pomp_n and_o their_o profuseness_n 5._o the_o natural_a effect_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christianity_n when_o they_o be_v receive_v with_o faith_n and_o when_o its_o worship_n be_v practise_v with_o devotion_n be_v to_o comfort_v the_o conscience_n and_o to_o give_v it_o a_o certain_a satisfaction_n and_o calm_a which_o be_v better_o feel_v than_o it_o can_v be_v express_v but_o our_o father_n be_v so_o far_o from_o receive_v that_o effect_n from_o the_o doctrine_n and_o worship_n wherein_o they_o make_v in_o their_o day_n almost_o the_o fundamental_o of_o religion_n to_o consist_v as_o in_o the_o invocation_n of_o saint_n the_o absolute_a obedience_n to_o the_o pope_n or_o to_o his_o council_n the_o conceit_n of_o man_n satisfaction_n the_o adoration_n of_o relic_n the_o pilgrimage_n and_o other_o thing_n of_o the_o like_a nature_n they_o be_v i_o say_v so_o far_o from_o receive_v it_o from_o these_o doctrine_n that_o on_o the_o contrary_n they_o can_v not_o but_o feel_v secret_a remorse_n after_o have_v practise_v they_o for_o the_o conscience_n of_o christian_n be_v natural_o carry_v out_o to_o none_o but_o god_n alone_o and_o can_v endure_v that_o that_o which_o be_v due_a to_o he_o shall_v be_v divide_v between_o he_o and_o the_o creature_n they_o have_v natural_o a_o reluctance_n to_o call_v upon_o any_o other_o be_v then_o the_o first_o cause_n of_o all_o to_o pay_v a_o religious_a service_n to_o lifeless_a image_n to_o subject_v themselves_o to_o any_o other_o oracle_n then_o that_o of_o god_n to_o attribute_v any_o part_n of_o their_o redemption_n to_o any_o other_o beside_o jesus_n christ_n who_o have_v acquire_v for_o they_o a_o fullness_n of_o salvation_n and_o in_o a_o word_n to_o lay_v hold_n on_o any_o creature_n as_o the_o object_n of_o their_o confidence_n or_o piety_n so_o our_o father_n know_v from_o their_o own_o experience_n that_o these_o tenet_n and_o devotion_n be_v not_o only_o barren_a of_o all_o that_o quiet_a but_o at_o the_o same_o time_n contrary_a to_o the_o peace_n of_o their_o soul_n they_o can_v not_o but_o receive_v a_o great_a prejudice_n against_o those_o tenet_n and_o against_o those_o devotion_n themselves_o and_o against_o that_o religion_n that_o propose_v they_o 6._o but_o that_o be_v not_o all_o they_o see_v yet_o many_o thing_n in_o that_o religion_n most_o formal_o opposite_a to_o many_o plain_a and_o express_v passage_n of_o scripture_n as_o the_o point_n of_o image_n to_o the_o second_o commandment_n thou_o shall_v not_o make_v to_o thyself_o any_o grave_a image_n etc._n etc._n that_o of_o communion_n only_o in_o one_o kind_n to_o that_o command_n of_o jesus_n christ_n drink_v you_o all_o of_o this_o that_o of_o pray_v in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n to_o the_o prohibition_n of_o st._n paul_n in_o the_o fourteen_o of_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n else_o if_o thou_o shall_v bless_v with_o the_o spirit_n how_o shall_v he_o that_o occupy_v the_o room_n of_o the_o unlearned_a say_v amen_o at_o thy_o give_v of_o thanks_o see_v he_o vuderstand_v not_o what_o thou_o say_v for_o thou_o very_o give_v thanks_o well_o but_o the_o other_o be_v not_o edify_v and_o the_o business_n of_o blind_a subjection_n to_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n to_o that_o strict_a declaration_n of_o the_o apostle_n we_o have_v not_o dominion_n over_o your_o faith_n that_o of_o the_o papal_a monarchy_n to_o these_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n the_o king_n of_o the_o gentile_n exercise_v lordship_n etc._n etc._n but_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v so_o with_o you_o that_o of_o humane_a satisfaction_n to_o the_o word_n of_o st._n john_n the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n cleanse_v we_o from_o all_o sin_n and_o that_o of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n to_o that_o doctrine_n of_o st._n paul_n to_o the_o hebrew_n that_o jesus_n christ_n have_v once_o offer_v up_o himself_o for_o we_o i_o do_v not_o at_o all_o inquire_v whether_o the_o force_n of_o these_o passage_n may_v be_v elude_v and_o distort_v to_o a_o sense_n that_o may_v agree_v with_o those_o point_n which_o i_o have_v mention_v i_o do_v not_o enter_v upon_o that_o it_o be_v enough_o if_o any_o see_v that_o opposition_n of_o which_o i_o speak_v to_o appear_v at_o 1_o sight_n that_o it_o likewise_o strike_v the_o soul_n and_o seem_v at_o least_o strong_a enough_o to_o create_v great_a scruple_n and_o to_o form_v a_o prejudice_n that_o carry_v our_o father_n on_o to_o examine_v those_o thing_n a_o little_a more_o narrow_o 7._o to_o which_o they_o be_v yet_o further_o urge_v by_o the_o consideration_n that_o they_o make_v of_o some_o maxim_n and_o distinction_n which_o they_o ordinary_o make_v use_v of_o to_o uphold_v the_o worship_v of_o creature_n for_o they_o discover_v in_o they_o something_o that_o be_v extreme_o scandalous_a for_o example_n where_o they_o maintain_v the_o worship_v of_o angel_n and_o that_o of_o the_o saint_n by_o say_v that_o they_o do_v not_o adore_v they_o but_o by_o a_o low_a sort_n of_o adoration_n proportion_v to_o the_o excellency_n they_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v in_o they_o not_o that_o they_o give_v they_o that_o supreme_a adoration_n which_o be_v due_a to_o none_o but_o god_n alone_o i_o do_v not_o here_o put_v it_o in_o question_n whether_o this_o distinction_n be_v good_a or_o bad_a it_o be_v sufficient_a that_o it_o have_v the_o ill_a luck_n to_o fall_v in_o with_o that_o which_o the_o ancient_a heathen_n make_v use_v of_o for_o the_o defence_n of_o those_o adoration_n which_o they_o pay_v to_o their_o genius_n to_o their_o hero_n to_o their_o demy_fw-fr and_o inferior_a god_n etc._n etc._n for_o the_o pagan_n say_v the_o same_o that_o man_n do_v they_o great_a wrong_n in_o lay_v it_o to_o their_o charge_n that_o they_o worship_v their_o genius_n and_o inferior_a god_n with_o that_o sovereign_a worship_n
condemn_v they_o to_o be_v burn_v alive_a and_o to_o cause_v that_o sentence_n of_o their_o condemnation_n to_o be_v execute_v for_o so_o that_o council_n violate_v the_o public_a faith_n by_o a_o most_o solemn_a and_o resplendent_a action_n 19_o but_o it_o be_v not_o content_v with_o that_o unless_o it_o do_v at_o the_o same_o time_n add_v a_o decree_n that_o it_o express_o make_v on_o that_o subject_a bear_v this_o with_o it_o that_o all_o letter_n of_o safe_a conduct_n grant_v to_o heretic_n by_o any_o emperor_n king_n or_o prince_n ought_v not_o to_o hinder_v the_o judge_n to_o who_o it_o shall_v appertain_v to_o take_v cognisance_n of_o their_o crime_n whether_o they_o be_v layman_n or_o churchman_n from_o proceed_n against_o they_o and_o punish_v they_o with_o the_o great_a severity_n aeneas_n silvius_n relate_v that_o that_o sentence_n through_o the_o force_n of_o which_o they_o be_v expose_v to_o the_o fire_n be_v give_v in_o full_a council_n lata_fw-la est_fw-la say_v he_o in_o concessu_fw-la patrum_fw-la adversus_fw-la contumaces_fw-la sententia_fw-la cremandos_fw-la esse_fw-la qui_fw-la doctrinam_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la respuerent_a 36._o prio_fw-la igitur_fw-la joannes_n combustus_fw-la est_fw-la hieronimus_fw-la diu_fw-la postea_fw-la in_o vinculis_fw-la habitus_fw-la cum_fw-la resipiscere_fw-la nollet_fw-la pari_fw-la supplicio_fw-la affectus_fw-la he_o add_v that_o those_o two_o man_n suffer_v that_o torment_n with_o and_o admirable_a fortitude_n sing_v of_o hymn_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o flame_n this_o be_v in_o that_o time_n very_o astonish_v to_o see_v a_o council_n gather_v in_o a_o body_n whole_o intent_n upon_o the_o cause_v the_o death_n of_o two_o christian_n since_o it_o be_v certain_a among_o christian_n that_o the_o church_n have_v no_o power_n over_o the_o temporal_a life_n of_o man_n but_o that_o scandal_n be_v yet_o make_v great_a by_o the_o way_n they_o carry_v it_o on_o for_o to_o come_v to_o that_o they_o make_v no_o difficulty_n of_o violate_v all_o that_o be_v the_o most_o sacred_a and_o inviolable_a in_o humane_a society_n i_o will_v say_v the_o public_a faith_n give_v by_o the_o authentic_a authority_n of_o the_o sovereign_a magistrate_n and_o give_v with_o all_o the_o appearance_n of_o their_o own_o consent_n as_o one_o may_v collect_v from_o the_o word_n of_o aeneas_n silvius_n for_o he_o say_v as_o that_o council_n be_v labour_v in_o the_o affair_n of_o bohemia_n placuit_fw-la tandem_fw-la sigismundo_n imperatore_n suadente_fw-la joannem_fw-la &_o hieronymuus_fw-la ad_fw-la synodum_fw-la vocari_fw-la they_o think_v good_a through_o the_o entreaty_n of_o the_o emperor_n sigismond_n that_o john_n and_o jerome_n shall_v be_v call_v to_o the_o council_n they_o then_o make_v no_o scruple_n of_o violate_v that_o faith_n to_o which_o they_o have_v consent_v and_o not_o only_o to_o break_v it_o by_o that_o action_n and_o in_o that_o practice_n but_o frame_v at_o the_o same_o time_n a_o decree_n to_o authorise_v that_o breach_n of_o faith_n and_o make_v it_o a_o lawful_a rule_n for_o posterity_n to_o go_v by_o who_o can_v deny_v that_o our_o father_n have_v not_o here_o a_o just_a cause_n to_o be_v shake_v at_o that_o management_n of_o affair_n which_o have_v violent_o bear_v down_o all_o that_o wise_a and_o moderate_a man_n since_o have_v conceive_v and_o that_o they_o have_v not_o reason_n to_o join_v that_o to_o all_o those_o other_o thing_n i_o have_v mention_v as_o a_o most_o powerful_a prejudice_n against_o a_o religion_n that_o maintain_v itself_o by_o such_o strange_a proceed_n 11._o they_o may_v have_v add_v also_o to_o the_o rest_n methinks_v the_o establishment_n of_o inquisition_n and_o usage_n of_o croisado_n against_o those_o who_o be_v pretend_v to_o be_v heretic_n for_o it_o be_v most_o true_a that_o such_o a_o way_n of_o maintain_v religion_n by_o torment_n and_o army_n raise_v by_o the_o clergy_n as_o the_o pope_n have_v use_v some_o age_n since_o against_o the_o waldenses_n the_o albigenses_n the_o wicklifist_n and_o the_o hussites_n be_v not_o at_o all_o proper_a to_o make_v it_o be_v belove_v or_o to_o instil_v into_o man_n mind_n a_o extreme_a good_a opinion_n of_o it_o there_o where_o they_o will_v introduce_v the_o faith_n by_o force_n they_o shut_v up_o people_n heart_n instead_o of_o gain_v they_o that_o course_n be_v good_a no_o far_o than_o for_o temporal_a monarchy_n or_o mundane_a religion_n where_o man_n be_v not_o much_o concern_v whether_o they_o reign_v over_o the_o spirit_n of_o man_n provide_v they_o reign_v over_o their_o body_n but_o that_o be_v not_o at_o all_o the_o way_n that_o jesus_n christ_n use_v who_o set_v up_o his_o throne_n in_o their_o conscience_n and_o who_o know_v no_o other_o conquest_n but_o those_o which_o the_o sword_n that_o come_v from_o his_o mouth_n gain_n 12._o but_o beside_o those_o cruel_a way_n which_o they_o make_v use_v of_o for_o the_o uphold_v their_o religion_n they_o employ_v yet_o other_o as_o well_o as_o those_o which_o though_o they_o be_v not_o so_o severe_a do_v not_o fail_v of_o be_v as_o odious_a and_o of_o raise_v as_o strong_a suspicion_n against_o that_o religion_n itself_o i_o may_v rank_v in_o this_o place_n those_o false_a miracle_n which_o they_o invent_v every_o day_n to_o gain_v credit_n to_o some_o doctrine_n and_o devotion_n which_o of_o themselves_o have_v no_o foundation_n at_o all_o in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o every_o own_o know_v how_o much_o these_o sort_n of_o fable_n be_v in_o use_n in_o the_o day_n of_o our_o father_n and_o some_o age_n before_o with_o what_o care_n they_o spread_v they_o among_o the_o people_n in_o preach_v they_o up_o with_o zeal_n and_o defend_v they_o with_o heat_n and_o in_o stuff_v their_o legend_n with_o they_o and_o other_o book_n of_o that_o nature_n but_o every_o own_o know_v likewise_o that_o the_o great_a part_n of_o they_o be_v so_o gross_o invent_v that_o a_o very_a mean_a understanding_n can_v easy_o detect_v their_o falseness_n we_o may_v join_v with_o those_o false_a miracle_n those_o story_n of_o vision_n or_o apparition_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n or_o some_o other_o saint_n to_o the_o religious_a man_n or_o woman_n which_o be_v so_o frequent_a that_o one_o can_v find_v nothing_o else_o in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o monk_n of_o those_o age_n we_o may_v place_v here_o also_o those_o so_o often_o devise_v tale_n of_o the_o return_n of_o soul_n out_o of_o purgatory_n of_o their_o apparition_n their_o complaint_n and_o pitiful_a groan_n of_o their_o request_n to_o be_v ease_v of_o their_o pain_n by_o their_o mass_n and_o foundation_n and_o of_o the_o outcry_n and_o terrible_a din_n that_o they_o make_v upon_o man_n least_o neglect_v to_o perform_v what_o they_o beg_v of_o they_o i_o do_v not_o now_o examine_v whether_o those_o doctrine_n which_o give_v ground_n to_o those_o pretend_a miracle_n to_o those_o vision_n and_o apparition_n be_v evangelical_n or_o not_o it_o be_v enough_o for_o i_o to_o note_v that_o that_o falseness_n that_o appear_v in_o the_o great_a part_n of_o those_o gross_a invention_n which_o be_v so_o often_o public_o detect_v render_v that_o religion_n just_o suspect_v not_o only_o in_o respect_n of_o those_o opinion_n and_o devotion_n which_o they_o pretend_v to_o authorise_v by_o those_o fraud_n but_o also_o in_o general_n as_o to_o all_o that_o which_o come_v under_o the_o name_n of_o tradition_n 13._o may_v we_o not_o say_v the_o same_o thing_n of_o so_o many_o forge_a and_o supposititious_a book_n the_o make_n and_o use_n of_o which_o have_v be_v so_o frequent_a in_o the_o age_n that_o precede_v the_o reformation_n not_o to_o meddle_v with_o what_o be_v report_v of_o the_o monk_n that_o they_o do_v not_o scruple_n to_o serve_v themselves_o by_o forge_a deed_n to_o enrich_v their_o convent_v and_o gain_v privilege_n to_o they_o without_o touch_v upon_o that_o there_o be_v few_o person_n that_o be_v ignorant_a of_o what_o character_n the_o decretal_a epistle_n of_o the_o ancient_a pope_n be_v collect_v under_o the_o name_n of_o one_o isidore_n mercator_n whereof_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n have_v make_v so_o advantageous_a a_o use_n for_o the_o establish_n of_o its_o authority_n and_o of_o the_o pretend_a donation_n of_o constantine_n by_o which_o that_o emperor_n be_v say_v to_o have_v give_v away_o the_o roman_a empire_n and_o all_o its_o right_n to_o the_o pope_n every_o own_o know_v also_o how_o they_o have_v forge_v whole_a book_n and_o treatise_n under_o the_o most_o ancient_a and_o venerable_a name_n as_o the_o epistle_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n to_o saint_n ignatius_n the_o work_n of_o dionysius_n the_o areopagite_n the_o epistle_n of_o saint_n martial_n the_o act_n of_o the_o passion_n of_o saint_n andrew_n by_o the_o priest_n of_o achaia_n the_o liturgy_n of_o saint_n james_n saint_z peter_z and_o of_o saint_n mark_n and_o divers_z other_o of_o the_o same_o nature_n
father_n a_o infallibility_n it_o be_v without_o doubt_v the_o king_n pleasure_n that_o we_o shall_v submit_v ourselves_o to_o his_o officer_n and_o that_o we_o shall_v obey_v they_o but_o he_o do_v not_o mean_a to_o advance_v they_o to_o be_v infallible_a nor_o to_o ordain_v we_o to_o obey_v they_o if_o they_o shall_v happen_v to_o command_v we_o these_o thing_n that_o be_v direct_o contrary_a to_o his_o service_n and_o to_o that_o fidelity_n which_o we_o owe_v to_o our_o sovereign_n it_o be_v then_o true_a that_o all_o those_o exhortation_n to_o hear_v our_o pastor_n and_o to_o obey_v their_o word_n be_v always_o to_o be_v restrain_v by_o this_o clause_n understand_v as_o far_o as_o their_o word_n shall_v be_v conformable_a to_o that_o of_o god_n that_o they_o can_v never_o go_v beyond_o that_o and_o that_o they_o can_v from_o thence_o draw_v any_o privilege_n of_o infallibility_n 4._o as_o these_o gentleman_n let_v slip_v nothing_o that_o may_v serve_v for_o their_o interest_n so_o they_o ordinary_o make_v use_v of_o that_o passage_n in_o the_o 18_o chapter_n of_o st._n matthew_n where_o jesus_n christ_n ordain_v that_o if_o any_o one_o receive_v a_o injury_n from_o another_o he_o be_v to_o reprove_v he_o between_o himself_o and_o he_o alone_o and_o if_o that_o first_o complaint_n signify_v nothing_o than_o he_o must_v take_v witness_n with_o he_o and_o if_o he_o neglect_v to_o hear_v those_o witness_n he_o be_v to_o tell_v it_o to_o the_o church_n and_o if_o he_o neglect_v to_o hear_v the_o church_n he_o be_v to_o be_v unto_o we_o as_o a_o heathen_a and_o a_o publican_n all_o that_o that_o follow_v in_o the_o close_a of_o that_o discourse_n of_o jesus_n christ_n show_v that_o he_o speak_v there_o neither_o of_o faith_n nor_o worship_n but_o of_o some_o private_a quarrel_n that_o we_o may_v have_v against_o our_o brethren_n to_o be_v take_v away_o and_o of_o the_o use_n of_o that_o discipline_n for_o the_o mind_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v that_o before_o we_o break_v off_o absolute_o with_o our_o brethren_n we_o shall_v observe_v all_o the_o rule_n of_o charity_n and_o that_o we_o shall_v there_o make_v use_n of_o the_o church_n but_o if_o he_o will_v refuse_v to_o hear_v the_o church_n that_o in_o that_o case_n it_o be_v allow_v we_o to_o treat_v he_o no_o long_o as_o a_o brother_n but_o as_o a_o real_a stranger_n who_o see_v not_o that_o if_o they_o will_v draw_v any_o thing_n of_o consequence_n from_o that_o passage_n they_o ought_v to_o pretend_v that_o the_o church_n be_v infallible_a not_o in_o matter_n of_o faith_n for_o they_o be_v not_o meddle_v with_o there_o but_o in_o matter_n of_o fact_n and_o in_o the_o censure_n that_o it_o give_v upon_o private_a quarrel_n in_o which_o nevertheless_o all_o the_o world_n agree_v that_o she_o may_v be_v deceive_v and_o therefore_o it_o be_v that_o these_o gentleman_n be_v wont_a to_o allege_v these_o last_o word_n tell_v it_o to_o the_o church_n and_o if_o he_o will_v not_o hear_v the_o church_n let_v he_o be_v unto_o thou_o as_o the_o heathen_n and_o publican_n and_o they_o allege_v they_o also_o as_o separate_v from_o the_o sequel_n of_o that_o discourse_n because_o otherwise_o they_o can_v not_o but_o observe_v that_o they_o will_v signify_v nothing_o to_o they_o 5._o in_o fine_a they_o produce_v those_o word_n of_o st._n paul_n to_o timothy_n these_o thing_n write_v i_o unto_o thou_o hope_v to_o come_v unto_o thou_o short_o but_o 5._o if_o i_o tarry_v long_o that_o thou_o may_v know_v how_o to_o behave_v thyself_o in_o the_o house_n of_o god_n which_o be_v the_o church_n of_o the_o live_a god_n the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o the_o truth_n how_o can_v say_v they_o the_o church_n be_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n if_o it_o be_v not_o infallible_a in_o the_o doctrine_n it_o propose_v as_o of_o faith_n and_o in_o the_o worship_n which_o it_o practice_n but_o what_o likelihood_n be_v there_o that_o he_o will_v have_v establish_v a_o opinion_n so_o important_a as_o that_o of_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o latin_a church_n on_o such_o metaphorical_a term_n which_o st._n paul_n do_v not_o make_v use_n of_o upon_o the_o sight_n of_o any_o infallibility_n which_o shall_v respect_v no_o other_o but_o the_o latin_a church_n in_o particular_a and_o which_o shall_v much_o rather_o have_v respect_v the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n or_o the_o other_o church_n of_o asia_n where_o timothy_n be_v then_o when_o the_o apostle_n write_v to_o he_o which_o yet_o do_v not_o fail_v of_o fall_v into_o error_n in_o term_n which_o may_v be_v explain_v in_o divers_a sense_n and_o which_o have_v be_v apply_v to_o divers_a particular_a bishop_n without_o yet_o pretend_v to_o raise_v they_o up_o to_o be_v infallible_a what_o colour_n i_o say_v be_v there_o that_o they_o can_v prove_v the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n it_o appear_v in_o the_o end_n of_o that_o discourse_n of_o st._n paul_n that_o he_o never_o think_v of_o make_v the_o church_n infallible_a for_o in_o all_o that_o chapter_n he_o aim_v at_o nothing_o else_o then_o to_o set_v down_o the_o duty_n of_o bishop_n and_o deacon_n and_o after_o have_v mark_v out_o in_o particular_a some_o quality_n with_o which_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v endow_v and_o from_o what_o vice_n they_o ought_v to_o be_v more_o especial_o exempt_a after_o what_o manner_n they_o ought_v to_o govern_v themselves_o he_o add_v in_o the_o close_a of_o all_o that_o he_o write_v all_o that_o to_o his_o disciple_n to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v know_v how_o to_o behave_v himself_o in_o the_o house_n of_o god_n which_o be_v the_o church_n of_o the_o live_a god_n the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n who_o see_v not_o that_o that_o infallibility_n come_v not_o in_o at_o all_o to_o the_o purpose_n in_o that_o close_a of_o the_o discourse_n let_v the_o bishop_n say_v he_o and_o the_o deacon_n take_v heed_n they_o be_v wise_a sober_a etc._n etc._n that_o they_o hold_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o faith_n in_o a_o pure_a conscience_n that_o their_o wife_n shall_v be_v honest_a and_o faithful_a in_o all_o thing_n that_o their_o child_n shall_v be_v well_o educate_v etc._n etc._n and_o that_o which_o i_o say_v in_o general_a i_o apply_v also_o to_o thou_o timothy_n to_o the_o end_n thou_o may_v live_v unblamable_o in_o the_o house_n of_o god_n in_o the_o church_n of_o the_o live_a god_n add_v according_a to_o the_o interpretation_n of_o these_o gentleman_n which_o church_n be_v infallible_a and_o can_v err_v and_o there_o be_v nothing_o of_o any_o natural_a connexion_n in_o it_o on_o the_o contrary_a that_o conceit_n of_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n according_a to_o the_o principle_n that_o our_o adversary_n make_v use_v of_o in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o perseverance_n of_o the_o saint_n will_v harden_v they_o in_o security_n for_o let_v they_o do_v as_o they_o will_v all_o will_v go_v well_o and_o after_o whatsoever_o manner_n the_o pastor_n govern_v the_o church_n can_v never_o be_v corrupt_v nor_o its_o truth_n be_v lose_v which_o will_v seem_v far_o more_o proper_a to_o inspire_v negligence_n into_o the_o bishop_n then_o to_o animate_v they_o to_o do_v their_o duty_n in_o effect_n if_o they_o can_v tell_v how_o to_o exhort_v man_n by_o motive_n of_o that_o nature_n they_o ought_v then_o to_o confess_v the_o truth_n to_o wit_n that_o these_o word_n the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n note_v the_o end_n and_o natural_a design_n of_o the_o church_n that_o for_o which_o she_o be_v make_v and_o to_o which_o she_o be_v call_v which_o be_v to_o sustain_v and_o bear_v the_o truth_n and_o to_o make_v it_o subsist_v in_o the_o world_n and_o so_o the_o discourse_n of_o the_o apostle_n appear_v very_o just_a and_o well_o connect_v behold_v say_v he_o after_o what_o manner_n the_o bishop_n ought_v to_o frame_v their_o course_n and_o after_o what_o sort_n thou_o ought_v to_o live_v in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n in_o behave_v thyself_o in_o it_o so_o as_o remember_v that_o god_n have_v appoint_v it_o to_o be_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o his_o truth_n live_v therefore_o in_o that_o manner_n that_o may_v answer_v that_o end_n or_o that_o natural_a appointment_n of_o the_o church_n just_o as_o if_o the_o king_n exhort_v one_o of_o the_o officer_n of_o his_o parliament_n to_o do_v his_o duty_n shall_v tell_v he_o that_o he_o live_v in_o a_o body_n that_o be_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o justice_n and_o the_o right_n of_o the_o crown_n that_o be_v to_o say_v which_o be_v natural_o ordain_v for_o the_o maintain_v justice_n in_o the_o state_n and_o to_o defend_v the_o right_n of_o the_o crown_n but_o as_o that_o speech_n of_o the_o prince_n will_v not_o establish_v any_o privilege_n of_o
they_o make_v use_v of_o the_o visibility_n of_o the_o church_n to_o 6._o prove_v its_o infallibility_n the_o true_a church_n of_o jesus_n christ_n say_v one_o ought_v always_o to_o be_v visible_a always_o plain_o to_o be_v discern_v whence_o it_o follow_v that_o she_o can_v err_v for_o if_o it_o be_v possible_a for_o she_o to_o do_v so_o she_o can_v be_v no_o long_o acknowledge_v as_o a_o true_a church_n and_o there_o will_v be_v no_o more_o mean_n propose_v to_o all_o man_n for_o their_o salvation_n none_o can_v be_v save_v out_o of_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o true_a church_n since_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o any_o to_o be_v save_v without_o faith_n and_o that_o according_a to_o the_o apostle_n none_o can_v have_v faith_n without_o that_o preach_v which_o ought_v to_o be_v make_v by_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n the_o true_a church_n ought_v then_o to_o be_v always_o visible_a to_o the_o end_n that_o all_o man_n shall_v set_v themselves_o under_o its_o ministry_n to_o obtain_v salvation_n or_o that_o at_o least_o they_o shall_v be_v inexcusable_a if_o they_o do_v not_o so_o place_v themselves_o and_o by_o consequence_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o she_o shall_v be_v infallible_a to_o this_o reason_n which_o alone_o make_v a_o long_a controversy_n and_o about_o which_o they_o make_v very_o long_a chapter_n they_o add_v some_o passage_n of_o scripture_n from_o whence_o they_o conclude_v that_o the_o church_n be_v always_o visible_a and_o some_o other_o that_o contain_v in_o their_o opinion_n not_o only_o the_o promise_n of_o a_o perpetual_a visibility_n but_o of_o a_o visibility_n shine_v with_o such_o a_o brightness_n and_o such_o splendour_n that_o the_o true_a church_n may_v be_v know_v to_o stranger_n and_o infidel_n to_o be_v so_o to_o answer_v this_o argument_n of_o they_o in_o the_o first_o place_n i_o say_v that_o the_o true_a church_n may_v be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v always_o discernible_a by_o all_o man_n as_o they_o pretend_v it_o to_o be_v as_o that_o one_o can_v say_v so_o much_o as_o that_o all_o man_n have_v always_o be_v able_a to_o know_v that_o there_o have_v be_v a_o society_n of_o christian_n in_o the_o world_n for_o not_o to_o allege_v that_o the_o christian_a church_n in_o its_o original_a then_o when_o the_o apostle_n be_v as_o yet_o in_o jerusalem_n or_o thereabouts_o be_v very_o little_o know_v to_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o world_n not_o to_o say_v that_o the_o knowledge_n of_o that_o new_a society_n do_v not_o so_o soon_o spread_v itself_o over_o the_o roman_a empire_n nor_o in_o the_o border_a country_n that_o the_o most_o of_o the_o people_n be_v ignorant_a for_o some_o time_n of_o what_o it_o be_v to_o be_v christian_n it_o can_v be_v deny_v that_o many_o age_n have_v slip_v away_o before_o that_o the_o most_o considerable_a part_n of_o the_o earth_n as_o all_o america_n can_v have_v any_o knowledge_n that_o there_o be_v any_o christian_n in_o the_o world_n how_o then_o can_v any_o one_o say_v the_o true_a church_n be_v always_o visible_a and_o always_o discernible_a to_o all_o man_n be_v it_o because_o those_o american_n before_o these_o last_o age_n be_v not_o man_n or_o be_v it_o because_o they_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o work_v out_o their_o own_o salvation_n they_o ought_v then_o in_o good_a earnest_n to_o acknowledge_v that_o god_n be_v most_o free_a in_o the_o dispense_n of_o the_o mean_n of_o salvation_n which_o he_o propose_v to_o who_o he_o will_v and_o refuse_v to_o who_o he_o will_n till_o the_o external_a communion_n with_o the_o true_a church_n shall_v be_v the_o only_a mean_n of_o and_o absolute_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n none_o can_v conclude_v that_o she_o ought_v to_o be_v perpetual_o visible_a and_o discernible_a by_o all_o man_n for_o it_o frequent_o happen_v that_o god_n for_o most_o just_a reason_n but_o which_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o search_v out_o with_o too_o great_a curiosity_n may_v withdraw_v from_o man_n the_o external_a mean_n of_o their_o salvation_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o he_o do_v not_o fail_v to_o convince_v by_o other_o way_n which_o render_v they_o inexcusable_a &_o worthy_a of_o condemnation_n man_n be_v bind_v to_o place_n themselves_o in_o the_o true_a church_n then_o when_o it_o be_v discernible_a to_o they_o to_o be_v so_o but_o when_o it_o be_v not_o so_o as_o it_o be_v not_o at_o this_o day_n to_o the_o southern_a nation_n we_o ought_v not_o to_o believe_v that_o god_n will_v damn_v they_o for_o not_o have_v put_v themselves_o into_o it_o they_o have_v other_o crime_n enough_o to_o be_v punish_v for_o without_o make_v god_n to_o violate_v his_o justice_n in_o that_o respect_n see_v here_o what_o i_o say_v for_o the_o defend_n of_o god_n justice_n and_o to_o let_v you_o see_v the_o rashness_n of_o those_o argument_n which_o suppose_v that_o god_n be_v bind_v to_o make_v those_o gentleman_n infallible_a to_o the_o end_n that_o he_o may_v condemn_v man_n with_o some_o reason_n but_o further_a i_o do_v not_o deny_v that_o one_o can_v in_o some_o sense_n say_v that_o god_n have_v always_o preserve_v some_o true_a church_n visible_a upon_o earth_n but_o that_o one_o ought_v not_o to_o play_v with_o those_o ambiguous_a term_n it_o be_v necessary_a to_o make_v a_o distinction_n and_o to_o show_v clear_o in_o what_o sense_n it_o may_v and_o in_o what_o sense_n it_o may_v not_o be_v find_v to_o be_v true_a for_o beside_o that_o that_o i_o have_v say_v in_o the_o first_o place_n that_o the_o true_a church_n be_v not_o visible_a nor_o to_o be_v general_o know_v by_o all_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o imagine_v that_o the_o true_a church_n must_v be_v always_o visible_a in_o one_o certain_a place_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o one_o only_a people_n one_o society_n one_o body_n which_o have_v be_v for_o time_n a_o true_a church_n may_v not_o in_o the_o end_n lose_v that_o quality_n after_o whatsoever_o manner_n that_o come_v to_o pass_v whether_o it_o be_v by_o a_o entire_a forsake_v of_o christianity_n or_o whether_o it_o be_v by_o a_o extreme_a and_o general_a corruption_n of_o that_o religion_n god_n have_v sometimee_n take_v away_o his_o candlestick_n from_o the_o midst_n of_o a_o people_n according_a to_o that_o threaten_v which_o he_o make_v to_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n i_o will_v come_v quick_o unto_o thou_o and_o take_v away_o thy_o candlestick_n out_o of_o its_o 2._o place_n except_o thou_o repent_v the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o african_a church_n which_o heretofore_o be_v so_o flourish_v be_v now_o no_o long_o so_o and_o there_o be_v not_o any_o place_n upon_o the_o earth_n neither_o paris_n nor_o constantinople_n nor_o jerusalem_n nor_o antioch_n nor_o rome_n nor_o avignon_n neither_o the_o latin_a church_n nor_o the_o greek_a nor_o the_o armenian_a nor_o the_o aethiopian_a neither_o the_o chair_n of_o saint_n peter_n nor_o that_o of_o saint_n james_n nor_o that_o of_o saint_n john_n nor_o that_o of_o saint_n denis_n that_o can_v promise_v itself_o that_o it_o shall_v never_o perish_v there_o be_v no_o such_o promise_n in_o the_o scripture_n and_o it_o be_v a_o speech_n very_o criminal_a in_o the_o mouth_n of_o any_o church_n whatsoever_o it_o be_v if_o she_o say_v i_o sit_v a_o queen_n 18._o and_o be_o no_o widow_n and_o shall_v see_v no_o sorrow_n when_o therefore_o they_o shall_v say_v that_o god_n keep_v up_o always_o a_o true_a church_n in_o the_o world_n let_v they_o remember_v that_o it_o be_v in_o a_o way_n independent_a on_o any_o place_n and_o see_v or_o if_o that_o restriction_n will_v not_o please_v they_o let_v they_o produce_v those_o clear_a and_o solid_a and_o peculiar_a privilege_n to_o we_o which_o may_v set_v the_o latin_a church_n above_o all_o its_o fellow_n for_o as_o to_o that_o that_o some_o set_v before_o we_o that_o say_n of_o jesus_n christ_n to_o s._n peter_n i_o have_v pray_v for_o thou_o that_o thy_o faith_n fail_v not_o it_o be_v clear_a from_o a_o plain_a 22._o view_n of_o that_o passage_n that_o it_o only_o regard_v the_o person_n of_o saint_n peter_n with_o relation_n to_o that_o violent_a temptation_n wherewith_o he_o be_v hurry_v in_o the_o house_n of_o the_o high_a priest_n and_o under_o which_o there_o want_v but_o a_o little_a of_o his_o faith_n have_v whole_o perish_v and_o that_o it_o do_v not_o in_o the_o least_o concern_v his_o pretend_a successor_n whereof_o there_o be_v not_o so_o much_o as_o one_o word_n in_o all_o the_o scripture_n i_o say_v the_o same_o to_o that_o commandment_n that_o jesus_n christ_n give_v he_o to_o feed_v his_o sheep_n 21._o which_o respect_v only_o his_o re-establishment_n in_o the_o office_n of_o a_o apostle_n after_o his_o fall_n nor_o be_v there_o any_o promise_n adjoin_v for_o his_o successor_n nor_o for_o their_o see_n whereof_o there_o be_v not_o a_o
we_o to_o surrender_v they_o but_o let_v they_o give_v we_o leave_v to_o use_v they_o at_o the_o least_o this_o one_o time_n to_o search_v whether_o it_o be_v just_a that_o we_o shall_v deprive_v ourselves_o of_o they_o jesus_n christ_n himself_o have_v forbid_v we_o to_o do_v it_o the_o author_n of_o those_o prejudices_fw-la have_v command_v it_o we_o ought_v at_o least_o to_o examine_v which_o of_o the_o two_o have_v reason_n on_o his_o side_n that_o then_o shall_v be_v the_o business_n of_o this_o chapter_n wherein_o i_o propose_v to_o myself_o to_o show_v that_o the_o authority_n of_o those_o prelate_n who_o govern_v the_o latin_a church_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o reformation_n can_v not_o be_v high_a enough_o to_o oblige_v our_o father_n blind_o to_o believe_v all_o that_o they_o tell_v they_o nor_o to_o hinder_v they_o from_o examine_v the_o doctrine_n of_o those_o prelate_n but_o as_o we_o find_v it_o frequent_o fall_v out_o that_o they_o disguise_v our_o sentiment_n and_o that_o they_o may_v render_v they_o odious_a they_o urge_v they_o beyond_o their_o due_a bound_n it_o will_v be_v meet_a before_o we_o go_v far_o precise_o to_o determine_v what_o be_v treat_v of_o in_o that_o right_n to_o the_o end_n that_o all_o equitable_a person_n may_v the_o more_o easy_o judge_v of_o it_o we_o do_v not_o here_o treat_v of_o the_o use_n of_o the_o ministry_n in_o general_n we_o acknowledge_v that_o god_n have_v appoint_v it_o in_o his_o church_n and_o that_o it_o will_v be_v a_o rashness_n very_o criminal_a to_o go_v about_o to_o abolish_v it_o the_o confession_n of_o our_o faith_n our_o practice_n our_o book_n and_o the_o very_a write_n of_o our_o adversary_n sufficient_o justify_v we_o to_o make_v we_o believe_v that_o they_o will_v not_o lay_v any_o thing_n to_o our_o charge_n in_o that_o point_n we_o do_v not_o here_o also_o meddle_v with_o that_o order_n that_o ought_v to_o be_v observe_v in_o the_o election_n and_o ordination_n of_o pastor_n we_o all_o agree_v that_o when_o the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n be_v regulate_v it_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v permit_v to_o any_o that_o will_v to_o thrust_v themselves_o into_o the_o ministry_n nor_o to_o encroach_v upon_o their_o function_n without_o be_v lawful_o call_v and_o if_o there_o be_v any_o difference_n in_o this_o matter_n it_o only_o regard_v other_o question_n and_o not_o that_o which_o we_o handle_v at_o present_a nor_o do_v we_o further_o treat_v of_o that_o respect_n or_o that_o obedience_n which_o every_o one_o owe_v to_o good_a and_o lawful_a pastor_n jesus_n christ_n have_v say_v he_o that_o hear_v you_o hear_v i_o and_o he_o that_o reject_v you_o reject_v i_o and_o st._n paul_n exhort_v the_o faithful_a to_o submit_v themselves_o with_o all_o teachableness_n to_o their_o conduct_n obey_v they_o that_o be_v set_v over_o you_o and_o submit_v yourselves_o for_o they_o watch_v for_o your_o soul_n the_o word_n then_o of_o good_a pastor_n ought_v to_o be_v receive_v with_o humility_n their_o function_n to_o be_v consider_v with_o veneration_n and_o their_o person_n to_o be_v love_v and_o honour_v not_o only_o in_o respect_n of_o their_o charge_n but_o because_o they_o acquit_v themselves_o faithful_o in_o it_o we_o do_v not_o yet_o further_o concern_v ourselves_o to_o know_v whether_o one_o ought_v not_o to_o give_v that_o obedience_n to_o these_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n who_o preach_v to_o we_o the_o word_n of_o god_n although_o their_o life_n be_v impure_a and_o scandalous_a and_o no_o way_n correspond_v with_o their_o doctrine_n we_o confess_v that_o it_o be_v not_o allowable_a for_o personal_a crime_n to_o separate_v ourselves_o from_o they_o nor_o from_o those_o who_o adhere_v to_o they_o whether_o they_o own_o those_o crime_n or_o whether_o they_o deny_v they_o we_o ought_v to_o endeavour_v to_o reduce_v they_o to_o their_o duty_n and_o if_o they_o be_v incorrigible_a or_o if_o they_o have_v commit_v action_n which_o render_v they_o unworthy_a of_o their_o function_n there_o be_v ordinary_a way_n that_o one_o ought_v to_o take_v to_o deprive_v they_o if_o they_o amend_v the_o scandal_n be_v repair_v and_o if_o they_o do_v not_o either_o because_o they_o will_v elude_v by_o artifices_fw-la the_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n or_o because_o that_o depravation_n may_v become_v so_o general_a that_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o more_o punishment_n of_o vice_n then_o we_o may_v pray_v god_n that_o he_o will_v send_v more_o faithful_a labourer_n into_o his_o harvest_n nay_o we_o ought_v to_o do_v it_o but_o we_o ought_v always_o to_o own_o those_o for_o pastor_n who_o be_v in_o that_o charge_n and_o to_o receive_v the_o word_n of_o god_n from_o their_o mouth_n while_o they_o preach_v it_o pure_o i_o go_v yet_o further_o and_o i_o say_v that_o we_o ought_v always_o in_o general_n to_o think_v well_o of_o those_o pastor_n and_o not_o light_o to_o entertain_v suspicion_n of_o their_o goodness_n and_o faithfulness_n especial_o when_o we_o speak_v of_o the_o whole_a body_n and_o the_o disorder_n that_o appear_v to_o be_v great_a and_o very_o visible_a therein_o that_o we_o be_v not_o absolute_o to_o form_v a_o just_a prejudice_n against_o their_o ministry_n this_o be_v what_o we_o acknowledge_v and_o our_o father_n acknowledge_v as_o well_o as_o we_o but_o if_o they_o will_v not_o be_v content_v with_o that_o if_o they_o will_v have_v it_o yet_o far_o that_o the_o faithful_a be_v bind_v blind_o to_o receive_v the_o doctrine_n of_o their_o pastor_n without_o have_v any_o right_a to_o examine_v their_o nature_n or_o their_o quality_n and_o that_o it_o will_v be_v a_o crime_n but_o to_o set_v upon_o that_o examination_n if_o they_o will_v that_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o pastor_n after_o whatsoever_o manner_n we_o consider_v it_o whether_o separat_o or_o conjunct_o or_o altogether_o or_o in_o the_o great_a number_n shall_v be_v without_o any_o bound_n or_o measure_n as_o to_o matter_n of_o faith_n or_o worship_n and_o the_o general_a rule_n of_o manner_n and_o that_o though_o they_o cease_v to_o believe_v the_o divine_a faith_n and_o to_o practice_v all_o that_o which_o they_o say_v without_o inform_v ourselves_o any_o far_o this_o be_v a_o maxim_n we_o deny_v and_o which_o we_o maintain_v be_v contrary_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o right_a reason_n and_o the_o true_a interest_n of_o christianity_n 1._o to_o begin_v with_o the_o word_n of_o god_n we_o may_v say_v that_o there_o never_o be_v any_o maxim_n in_o the_o world_n against_o which_o it_o do_v more_o express_o declare_v itself_o for_o first_o it_o absolute_o forbid_v lordship_n in_o pastor_n the_o king_n of_o the_o gentile_n say_v jesus_n christ_n in_o that_o passage_n before_o allege_a exercise_n lordship_n over_o they_o and_o those_o that_o 22._o exercise_n authority_n upon_o they_o be_v call_v benefactor_n but_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v so_o with_o you_o but_o he_o that_o be_v great_a among_o you_o let_v he_o be_v as_o the_o less_o and_o he_o that_o be_v chief_a as_o he_o that_o do_v serve_v in_o the_o same_o sense_n saint_n peter_n bid_v they_o feed_v the_o flock_n of_o jesus_n christ_n take_v the_o oversight_n 5._o thereof_o not_o by_o constraint_n but_o willing_o not_o for_o filthy_a lucre_n but_o of_o a_o ready_a mind_n neither_o as_o be_v lord_n over_o god_n heritage_n but_o be_v example_n to_o the_o flock_n st._n paul_n preach_v the_o same_o doctrine_n with_o st._n peter_n we_o have_v not_o say_v he_o to_o the_o corinthian_n dominion_n over_o 1._o your_o faith_n but_o be_v helper_n of_o your_o joy_n we_o may_v observe_v that_o on_o purpose_n to_o hinder_v the_o introduce_v that_o dominion_n into_o the_o church_n under_o the_o name_n of_o instruction_n as_o they_o have_v do_v in_o these_o last_o age_n jesus_n christ_n go_v so_o far_o as_o to_o forbid_v his_o disciple_n the_o name_n of_o master_n be_v not_o you_o say_v he_o call_v rabbi_n for_o one_o be_v your_o master_n 23._o even_o christ_n but_o he_o that_o be_v great_a among_o you_o shall_v be_v your_o servant_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v that_o the_o scripture_n give_v the_o title_n of_o chief_a shepherd_n to_o none_o but_o jesus_n christ_n alone_o when_o the_o chief_a shepherd_n 5._o shall_v appear_v say_v st._n peter_n you_o shall_v receive_v a_o crown_n of_o glory_n that_o fade_v not_o away_o god_n have_v bring_v again_o from_o the_o dead_a the_o 13._o great_a shepherd_n of_o the_o sheep_n say_v st._n paul_n but_o as_o to_o other_o pastor_n the_o scripture_n be_v so_o far_o from_o give_v they_o any_o character_n of_o dominion_n that_o on_o the_o contrary_n they_o be_v often_o call_v minister_n or_o servant_n 1._o steward_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o god_n ambassador_n messengers_z interpreter_n to_o teach_v we_o that_o they_o ought_v not_o to_o pretend_v to_o reign_v over_o man_n
sacrilegious_a and_o that_o those_o on_o the_o contrary_n who_o submit_v themselves_o to_o the_o decision_n of_o the_o church_n be_v those_o good_a man_n who_o do_v nothing_o but_o their_o duty_n and_o that_o we_o ourselves_o at_o this_o day_n who_o have_v receive_v our_o christianity_n from_o the_o hand_n of_o that_o small_a number_n be_v but_o the_o follower_n of_o rebel_n and_o schismatic_n yet_o all_o that_o they_o must_v say_v if_o they_o lie_v down_o that_o principle_n of_o absolute_a obedience_n it_o appear_v then_o that_o that_o principle_n be_v false_a and_o unjust_a and_o invent_v for_o the_o ruin_n of_o religion_n 10._o in_o effect_n a_o absolute_a obedience_n and_o a_o entire_a resign_v of_o one_o self_n to_o the_o conduct_n of_o another_o as_o to_o those_o matter_n that_o regard_v the_o faith_n and_o the_o conscience_n be_v a_o duty_n that_o we_o can_v render_v lawful_o to_o none_o but_o god_n who_o be_v the_o first_o truth_n the_o first_o principle_n of_o all_o justice_n a_o man_n can_v submit_v his_o understanding_n and_o his_o heart_n to_o the_o word_n of_o any_o one_o so_o as_o to_o believe_v blind_o that_o which_o he_o say_v without_o give_v he_o a_o kind_n of_o adoration_n for_o there_o can_v be_v no_o homage_n great_a than_o that_o of_o a_o inward_a blind_a submission_n it_o be_v a_o infinite_a act_n according_a as_o a_o creature_n may_v be_v say_v to_o act_v infinite_o that_o be_v to_o say_v without_o bound_n without_o reserve_n without_o measure_n it_o be_v then_o a_o act_n that_o can_v belong_v to_o none_o but_o god_n immediate_o that_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o transfer_v to_o the_o church_n if_o we_o will_v not_o adore_v the_o church_n and_o to_o which_o by_o consequence_n a_o church_n can_v never_o pretend_v without_o usurp_v the_o just_a right_n of_o god_n 11._o god_n himself_o have_v so_o far_o forbear_v his_o right_n that_o he_o do_v not_o very_o often_o absolute_o make_v use_n of_o it_o but_o leave_v it_o to_o our_o mind_n to_o judge_v of_o the_o truth_n that_o he_o propound_v to_o we_o for_o there_o be_v often_o in_o those_o thing_n that_o he_o teach_v we_o character_n that_o equal_o note_v their_o truth_n and_o their_o divinity_n so_o that_o at_o all_o time_n we_o may_v draw_v these_o two_o conclusion_n from_o they_o this_o doctrine_n be_v true_a this_o doctrine_n be_v of_o god_n without_o their_o depend_v one_o upon_o the_o other_o we_o may_v say_v the_o same_o of_o his_o commandment_n they_o bear_v most_o frequent_o character_n of_o their_o natural_a justice_n as_o well_o as_o those_o of_o their_o divinity_n and_o they_o give_v we_o leave_v to_o receive_v they_o not_o only_o by_o a_o act_n of_o obedience_n but_o by_o a_o act_n of_o judgement_n also_o as_o it_o be_v from_o he_o that_o we_o hold_v that_o admirable_a faculty_n of_o distinguish_v the_o true_a from_o the_o false_a the_o good_a from_o the_o bad_a by_o character_n impress_v in_o those_o thing_n themselves_o so_o he_o will_v not_o take_v a_o way_n the_o use_n of_o it_o in_o matter_n of_o religion_n on_o the_o contrary_a it_o be_v ordinary_o by_o the_o use_n of_o that_o that_o he_o draw_v we_o that_o he_o convince_v we_o first_o of_o all_o of_o the_o truth_n of_o some_o doctrine_n that_o he_o make_v we_o afterward_o acknowledge_v the_o necessary_a connexion_n that_o they_o have_v with_o other_o which_o he_o have_v reveal_v to_o we_o the_o truth_n whereof_o appear_v not_o so_o clear_o abstract_o consider_v at_o first_o and_o by_o that_o connexion_n he_o make_v we_o receive_v they_o he_o show_v we_o the_o equity_n of_o his_o precept_n the_o horror_n of_o those_o vice_n that_o be_v contrary_a to_o they_o and_o in_o that_o manner_n he_o gain_v our_o heart_n by_o make_v use_n of_o our_o own_o reason_n not_o that_o we_o may_v lawful_o reject_v any_o of_o those_o thing_n which_o he_o teach_v we_o we_o have_v no_o right_n for_o that_o without_o doubt_n because_o where_o our_o understanding_n be_v want_v to_o discover_v those_o character_n of_o truth_n or_o of_o equity_n in_o those_o thing_n which_o he_o teach_v we_o there_o he_o have_v ordain_v that_o his_o authority_n shall_v help_v we_o it_o be_v god_n that_o say_v it_o it_o be_v god_n that_o command_v it_o but_o it_o be_v not_o the_o same_o with_o respect_n to_o the_o church_n the_o church_n be_v not_o god_n she_o be_v but_o a_o interpreter_n and_o servant_n of_o god_n she_o ought_v then_o to_o show_v we_o in_o all_o that_o she_o teach_v we_o as_o matter_n of_o faith_n or_o that_o she_o command_v the_o conscience_n to_o submit_v to_o those_o character_n of_o truth_n and_o equity_n in_o the_o thing_n themselves_o or_o else_o those_o of_o their_o divinity_n when_o she_o fail_v in_o that_o she_o can_v supply_v that_o defect_n by_o her_o authority_n for_o in_o that_o case_n her_o authority_n be_v pure_o no_o other_o than_o humane_a and_o a_o humane_a authority_n be_v not_o sufficient_a either_o for_o the_o faith_n or_o for_o the_o conscience_n so_o that_o every_o man_n have_v right_a to_o examine_v that_o which_o she_o teach_v and_o to_o reject_v that_o that_o be_v beyond_o the_o word_n of_o god_n 12._o in_o fine_a let_v those_o gentleman_n tell_v we_o if_o they_o please_v whether_o in_o this_o same_o question_n concern_v the_o sovereign_a authority_n of_o the_o latin_a church_n and_o the_o obligation_n that_o lie_v upon_o every_o one_o to_o hold_v himself_o to_o its_o decision_n they_o mean_v that_o every_o one_o shall_v refer_v himself_o to_o the_o latin_a church_n and_o believe_v also_o mere_o because_o that_o she_o say_v so_o without_o any_o other_o examination_n or_o whether_o they_o will_v grant_v that_o every_o one_o may_v have_v right_a to_o examine_v of_o what_o nature_n of_o what_o extent_n and_o of_o what_o force_n that_o authority_n be_v and_o how_o far_o that_o obedience_n go_v which_o he_o ought_v to_o render_v to_o it_o there_o be_v no_o likelihood_n they_o will_v say_v the_o former_a for_o that_o authority_n can_v establish_v itself_o when_o it_o shall_v be_v establish_v a_o man_n may_v refer_v himself_o to_o it_o for_o other_o thing_n but_o while_o her_o own_o establishment_n be_v dispute_v it_o be_v requisite_a it_o shall_v come_v from_o somewhat_o else_o and_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v for_o that_o proof_n capable_a of_o persuade_v we_o to_o what_o purpose_n do_v they_o tell_v we_o of_o its_o external_a mark_n which_o make_v we_o say_v the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la discover_v without_o any_o difficulty_n that_o height_n of_o authority_n which_o be_v in_o the_o catholic_n church_n if_o they_o will_v not_o leave_v the_o faithful_a a_o right_a to_o see_v those_o external_a mark_n and_o to_o examine_v they_o not_o any_o far_o by_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o church_n but_o by_o their_o own_o that_o be_v so_o they_o may_v see_v that_o they_o ought_v always_o to_o give_v man_n a_o right_a of_o make_v a_o judgement_n by_o their_o own_o light_n and_o to_o give_v they_o in_o that_o question_n the_o most_o important_a matter_n of_o all_o to_o wit_n that_o of_o choose_v a_o rule_n and_o a_o settle_a principle_n for_o their_o guidance_n and_o their_o faith_n a_o authority_n upon_o which_o their_o mind_n and_o conscience_n may_v rest_v and_o lie_v down_o in_o perfect_a peace_n they_o must_v give_v they_o that_o in_o that_o question_n which_o it_o be_v no_o way_n easy_a for_o they_o to_o decide_v for_o beside_o that_o they_o ought_v to_o see_v those_o external_a mark_n of_o the_o latin_a church_n which_o say_v they_o gain_v she_o so_o great_a a_o authority_n they_o ought_v also_o to_o see_v whether_o there_o be_v not_o other_o which_o they_o take_v away_o more_o reasonable_o from_o she_o then_o those_o that_o they_o give_v she_o they_o ought_v to_o see_v whether_o those_o mark_n be_v not_o common_a to_o other_o religious_a society_n that_o may_v by_o that_o mean_n dispute_v with_o the_o latin_a church_n that_o authority_n they_o ought_v to_o see_v whether_o those_o mark_n when_o they_o shall_v become_v peculiar_a to_o the_o latin_a church_n may_v be_v capable_a of_o give_v she_o so_o sovereign_a a_o authority_n over_o man_n faith_n and_o conscience_n which_o seem_v natural_o to_o belong_v to_o none_o but_o god_n and_o because_o in_o that_o question_n we_o treat_v not_o of_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o church_n but_o only_o of_o the_o prelate_n and_o those_o who_o take_v up_o the_o ecclesiastical_a function_n they_o ought_v to_o know_v whether_o those_o external_a mark_n can_v hinder_v they_o from_o believe_v that_o those_o prelate_n have_v abuse_v their_o charge_n and_o bring_v in_o or_o suffer_v to_o be_v bring_v in_o divers_a corruption_n into_o the_o church_n all_o that_o be_v not_o so_o easy_a as_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la tell_v we_o it_o be_v there_o be_v some_o
write_v to_o leo_n with_o all_o the_o respect_n imaginable_a and_o let_v he_o see_v that_o the_o questor_n and_o those_o who_o have_v till_o that_o time_n uphold_v they_o have_v dishonour_v his_o see_n and_o his_o church_n that_o as_o to_o himself_o he_o find_v himself_o very_o unhappy_a to_o see_v that_o their_o calumny_n shall_v have_v prevail_v over_o his_o innocence_n and_o he_o further_o offer_v to_o give_v over_o that_o matter_n of_o indulgence_n and_o whole_o to_o be_v silent_a in_o it_o provide_v that_o his_o adversary_n shall_v do_v the_o like_a but_o whether_o it_o be_v that_o all_o that_o negotiation_n of_o miltit_n be_v but_o feign_v on_o his_o part_n or_o that_o in_o effect_v his_o counsel_n be_v not_o approve_v by_o those_o of_o his_o party_n as_o luther_n himself_o insinaute_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o from_o the_o time_n that_o that_o letter_n have_v be_v draw_v from_o he_o george_z duke_z of_o saxony_n a_o prince_n that_o stick_v very_o close_o to_o the_o interest_n of_o the_o pope_n desire_v that_o he_o will_v make_v a_o public_a disputation_n at_o leipsic_n upon_o the_o matter_n in_o controversy_n the_o dispute_n be_v manage_v the_o beginning_n between_o eccius_n and_o carolostad_n concern_v freewill_n and_o grace_n but_o they_o draw_v in_o luther_n himself_o upon_o the_o subject_n of_o indulgence_n of_o purgatory_n and_o the_o power_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o they_o procure_v almost_o at_o the_o same_o time_n from_o the_o university_n of_o cologn_n and_o louvain_n a_o condemnation_n of_o divers_a article_n draw_v out_o of_o his_o book_n he_o defend_v himself_o against_o these_o new_a adversary_n and_o make_v the_o world_n 2._o see_v by_o his_o public_a write_n the_o truth_n of_o his_o doctrine_n and_o the_o injustice_n of_o those_o condemnation_n but_o within_o a_o little_a after_o pope_n leo_n be_v unwilling_a to_o try_v any_o thing_n further_o publish_v his_o terrible_a bull_n of_o excommunication_n 1520._o against_o he_o which_o they_o call_v the_o bull_n exurge_v there_o after_o have_v earnest_o importune_v jesus_n christ_n saint_n peter_n and_o saint_n paul_n with_o all_o the_o saint_n in_o paradise_n to_o come_v to_o the_o succour_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n he_o set_v down_o in_o particular_a one_o and_o forty_o article_n of_o luther_n doctrine_n which_o he_o declare_v to_o be_v respective_o pestilent_a destructive_a scandalous_a false_a heretical_a offend_v pious_a ear_n seduce_v soul_n and_o contrary_a to_o the_o catholic_n truth_n and_o to_o the_o charity_n to_o the_o respect_n and_o obedience_n that_o be_v owe_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o be_v the_o mother_n of_o all_o the_o faithful_a and_o the_o mistress_n of_o the_o faith_n and_o as_o such_o several_o he_o condemn_v they_o disprove_v they_o reject_v they_o and_o declare_v that_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v reject_v by_o christian_n of_o both_o sex_n he_o forbid_v all_o bishop_n patriarch_n metropolitan_o and_o general_o all_o churchman_n and_o king_n the_o emperor_n the_o elector_n prince_n duke_n marquess_n earl_n baron_n captain_n etc._n etc._n and_o in_o a_o word_n all_o sort_n of_o man_n to_o hold_v those_o article_n or_o to_o favour_v they_o in_o any_o manner_n what_o soever_o under_o the_o penalty_n of_o excommunication_n and_o be_v deprive_v of_o their_o land_n and_o of_o their_o good_n and_o treat_v as_o infamous_a heretic_n favourer_n of_o heretic_n and_o guilty_a of_o high_a treason_n and_o as_o to_o luther_n he_o complain_v of_o he_o that_o he_o will_v not_o come_v to_o rome_n where_o he_o will_v have_v let_v he_o have_v see_v that_o he_o have_v not_o do_v so_o much_o evil_a as_o he_o believe_v and_o he_o aggravate_v it_o as_o a_o great_a rashness_n in_o he_o to_o have_v appeal_v to_o a_o council_n against_o the_o constitution_n of_o pius_n the_o second_o and_o of_o julius_n the_o second_o who_o will_v have_v those_o punish_v as_o heretic_n that_o make_v such_o appeal_n that_o therefore_o he_o condemn_v as_o heretic_n he_o and_o all_o his_o adherent_n if_o in_o the_o space_n of_o fifty_o day_n they_o do_v not_o renounce_v all_o their_o error_n he_o forbid_v all_o christian_n to_o have_v any_o commerce_n or_o conversation_n with_o they_o or_o to_o yield_v they_o any_o necessary_a thing_n and_o give_v his_o order_n to_o the_o emperor_n to_o king_n and_o prince_n etc._n etc._n to_o seize_v their_o person_n and_o to_o send_v they_o to_o rome_n promise_v great_a reward_n to_o those_o who_o shall_v do_v so_o good_a a_o work_n luther_n some_o time_n after_o write_v against_o that_o bull_n and_o appeal_v afresh_o to_o a_o council_n lawful_o call_v notwithstanding_o he_o justify_v himself_o with_o great_a solidity_n about_o all_o those_o condemn_a article_n and_o it_o be_v pertinent_a to_o note_v that_o among_o those_o article_n that_o the_o pope_n anathematise_v as_o heretical_a or_o rash_a or_o scandalous_a and_o contrary_a to_o the_o catholic_n truth_n these_o follow_a proposition_n may_v be_v find_v that_o that_o proverb_n be_v most_o true_a that_o say_v that_o the_o best_a penance_n be_v a_o good_a life_n that_o it_o will_v be_v very_o well_o if_o the_o church_n in_o a_o council_n shall_v ordain_v that_o the_o laity_n shall_v receive_v the_o communion_n in_o both_o kind_n that_o the_o treasure_n of_o the_o church_n from_o whence_o the_o pope_n draw_v his_o indulgence_n be_v not_o the_o merit_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o the_o saint_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n the_o successor_n of_o saint_n peter_n be_v not_o the_o vicar_n of_o jesus_n christ_n over_o all_o the_o church_n of_o the_o world_n nor_o that_o there_o be_v any_o one_o establish_v by_o jesus_n christ_n himself_o in_o the_o person_n of_o saint_n peter_n that_o it_o be_v not_o in_o the_o power_n of_o the_o church_n or_o of_o the_o pope_n to_o make_v article_n of_o faith_n nor_o to_o establish_v new_a law_n for_o manner_n or_o for_o good_a work_n that_o though_o the_o pope_n shall_v hold_v with_o a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o church_n a_o opinion_n which_o shall_v not_o itself_o be_v erroneous_a yet_o it_o will_v not_o be_v a_o sin_n or_o a_o heresy_n to_o hold_v a_o contrary_a opinion_n especial_o in_o thing_n not_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n until_o a_o general_n council_n shall_v have_v disprove_v the_o one_o and_o approve_v of_o the_o other_o that_o the_o ecclesiastical_a prelate_n and_o secular_a prince_n do_v not_o do_v ill_a when_o they_o abolish_v the_o order_n of_o beg_a friar_n that_o purgatory_n can_v not_o be_v prove_v by_o the_o holy_a canonical_a scripture_n these_o proposition_n be_v declare_v to_o be_v either_o pestilent_a or_o pernicious_a or_o scandalous_a or_o heretical_a without_o specify_v any_o one_o in_o particular_a for_o the_o pope_n speak_v of_o they_o only_o in_o the_o whole_a that_o they_o be_v such_o so_o it_o be_v that_o leo_n and_o all_o his_o court_n manage_v those_o matter_n to_o affirm_v that_o a_o true_a amendment_n of_o life_n a_o holy_a and_o sincere_a return_n from_o vice_n to_o virtue_n be_v the_o best_a of_o all_o pennance_n appear_v to_o be_v a_o detestable_a crime_n to_o they_o to_o wish_v that_o a_o general_n council_n may_v establish_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o eucharist_n according_a to_o the_o institution_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v such_o a_o abomination_n with_o they_o as_o be_v think_v sufficient_a to_o deserve_v the_o flame_n not_o to_o believe_v that_o the_o merit_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o of_o the_o saint_n make_v up_o a_o certain_a treasure_n which_o neither_o faith_n nor_o holiness_n nor_o repentance_n can_v give_v the_o faithful_a any_o part_n of_o but_o which_o be_v to_o be_v dispense_v only_o by_o the_o way_n of_o indulgence_n for_o money_n pass_v in_o their_o judgement_n for_o a_o hellish_a heresy_n to_o hold_v that_o our_o faith_n have_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o its_o object_n and_o not_o that_o of_o man_n also_o and_o that_o god_n alone_o can_v impose_v moral_a law_n on_o the_o conscience_n be_v in_o their_o opinion_n a_o astonish_a wickedness_n to_o believe_v that_o one_o may_v without_o herefy_v hold_v a_o opinion_n contrary_a to_o that_o of_o the_o pope_n in_o matter_n not_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o not_o determine_v by_o any_o council_n be_v a_o pestilent_a error_n to_o give_v the_o least_o blow_n to_o the_o interest_n of_o monk_n or_o the_o fire_n of_o purgatory_n be_v a_o horrible_a sacrilege_n for_o which_o there_o be_v not_o any_o remission_n after_o that_o condemnation_n the_o pope_n write_v to_o john_n frederick_n elector_n of_o saxony_n earnest_o entreat_v he_o not_o to_o give_v any_o more_o protection_n to_o luther_n and_o he_o send_v hierome_n aleander_n his_o nuntio_n into_o germany_n to_o cause_v that_o condemnation_n to_o be_v execute_v but_o aleander_n not_o be_v able_a to_o obtain_v of_o
difference_n which_o we_o have_v with_o they_o concern_v the_o opinion_n of_o the_o necessity_n of_o auricular_a confession_n for_o that_o opinion_n be_v partly_o found_v upon_o this_o that_o absolution_n of_o the_o priest_n be_v a_o judiciary_n act_n and_o that_o in_o that_o respect_n the_o church_n have_v a_o true_a tribunal_n before_o which_o the_o faithful_a be_v bind_v to_o appear_v and_o partly_o upon_o the_o opinion_n that_o the_o penance_n which_o the_o priest_n enjoin_v be_v true_a satisfaction_n to_o the_o divine_a justice_n which_o they_o be_v bind_v to_o undergo_v 8._o last_o it_o be_v from_o the_o same_o source_n that_o the_o difference_n proceed_v which_o we_o have_v with_o they_o concern_v the_o super-abundant_a satisfaction_n of_o the_o saint_n of_o which_o they_o will_v have_v it_o that_o the_o faithful_a may_v partake_v and_o whereof_o in_o part_n they_o compose_v the_o treasure_n of_o the_o church_n behold_v here_o eight_o controversy_n include_v in_o the_o explication_n of_o the_o first_o act_n of_o our_o justification_n upon_o the_o second_o we_o differ_v about_o the_o foundation_n upon_o which_o the_o right_a that_o god_n give_v we_o to_o life_n eternal_a be_v establish_v or_o if_o you_o will_v about_o the_o proper_a and_o direct_a cause_n in_o consideration_n of_o which_o god_n give_v we_o that_o right_a for_o we_o establish_v it_o alone_o upon_o the_o merit_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o virtue_n of_o that_o comunion_n which_o we_o have_v with_o he_o but_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n establish_v it_o upon_o the_o merit_n of_o our_o work_n also_o for_o she_o will_v have_v it_o that_o after_o god_n have_v give_v we_o his_o grace_n by_o which_o we_o do_v good_a work_n we_o true_o inherit_v not_o only_o a_o increase_n of_o grace_n but_o eternal_a life_n and_o even_o a_o increase_n of_o glory_n and_o she_o anathematize_n those_o who_o do_v not_o believe_v it_o 2._o we_o differ_v also_o about_o those_o to_o who_o god_n give_v that_o right_a for_o we_o believe_v that_o god_n give_v it_o only_o to_o his_o elect_n in_o who_o he_o preserve_v it_o by_o his_o grace_n and_o by_o the_o gift_n of_o perseverance_n but_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n believe_v that_o he_o give_v it_o also_o to_o divers_a reprobate_n who_o his_o grace_n abandon_v and_o who_o final_o perish_v in_o their_o sin_n upon_o the_o three_o doctrine_n we_o differ_v concern_v the_o nature_n and_o the_o definition_n of_o justify_v faith_n for_o as_o for_o we_o we_o look_v on_o it_o as_o a_o act_n of_o the_o soul_n that_o embrace_n or_o accept_v the_o satisfaction_n and_o merit_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o which_o apply_v the_o promise_n of_o god_n mercy_n make_v to_o we_o in_o the_o gospel_n and_o we_o labour_v as_o much_o as_o we_o can_v to_o live_v according_a to_o that_o thought_n but_o the_o doctor_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n frame_v a_o idea_n of_o that_o faith_n of_o a_o very_a great_a coldness_n and_o negligence_n for_o they_o content_v themselves_o to_o say_v that_o it_o be_v a_o consent_n that_o we_o yield_v in_o general_a to_o all_o the_o truth_n reveal_v in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o there_o be_v some_o that_o go_v so_o far_o as_o to_o say_v that_o faith_n fail_v not_o to_o justify_v we_o although_o it_o shall_v not_o have_v the_o least_o regard_n to_o the_o particular_a mercy_n of_o god_n towards_o we_o which_o be_v a_o thing_n that_o we_o can_v understand_v without_o horror_n for_o the_o rest_n when_o i_o shall_v say_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o imputation_n of_o the_o merit_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o his_o satisfaction_n be_v know_v but_o to_o a_o very_a few_o in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o that_o also_o be_v of_o the_o application_n that_o we_o make_v of_o they_o to_o ourselves_o by_o the_o internal_a act_n of_o our_o soul_n which_o receive_v they_o when_o i_o shall_v say_v that_o these_o truth_n so_o important_a and_o so_o necessary_a to_o the_o practice_n of_o christianity_n be_v almost_o stifle_v by_o that_o great_a multitude_n of_o external_a exercise_n with_o which_o they_o busy_v the_o people_n i_o shall_v say_v nothing_o in_o my_o judgement_n that_o the_o more_o sincere_a person_n will_v not_o acknowledge_v and_o of_o which_o god_n grant_v they_o may_v be_v able_a hereafter_o to_o convince_v i_o of_o a_o falsehood_n in_o that_o respect_n in_o fine_a the_o last_o doctrine_n that_o full_o make_v up_o the_o idea_n of_o our_o justification_n according_a to_o the_o scripture_n produce_v of_o itself_o a_o considerable_a controversy_n between_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o we_o for_o as_o for_o we_o we_o limit_v ourselves_o to_o the_o good_a work_n to_o which_o our_o justification_n oblige_v we_o and_o which_o god_n have_v enjoin_v we_o without_o go_v any_o further_o but_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n extend_v they_o even_o to_o those_o which_o she_o herself_o command_v for_o the_o pretend_v that_o her_o law_n proper_o and_o direct_o bind_v the_o conscience_n under_o pain_n of_o mortal_a sin_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v that_o leo_n x._o condemn_a luther_n for_o have_v write_v that_o the_o church_n have_v no_o power_n to_o make_v law_n concern_v manner_n or_o good_a work_n all_o these_o controversy_n that_o natural_o arise_v from_o the_o different_a explication_n which_o they_o give_v of_o the_o tenet_n of_o justification_n let_v we_o sufficient_o see_v that_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la be_v mistake_v if_o he_o think_v that_o we_o shall_v have_v no_o more_o upon_o this_o matter_n then_o difference_n about_o word_n and_o m._n le_fw-fr blanc_n be_v too_o sincere_a and_o too_o learned_a to_o have_v pretend_v to_o deny_v any_o of_o those_o thing_n which_o i_o have_v mention_v although_o he_o have_v judicious_o remark_v that_o man_n may_v easy_o equivocate_v upon_o the_o different_a signification_n of_o the_o term_n it_o be_v therefore_o neither_o a_o piece_n of_o rashness_n nor_o impertinency_n that_o our_o first_o reformer_n have_v such_o a_o regard_n to_o the_o matter_n of_o justification_n as_o be_v a_o thing_n of_o the_o great_a importance_n in_o religion_n and_o it_o be_v on_o the_o contrary_n most_o just_a that_o have_v see_v that_o doctrine_n of_o the_o salvation_n of_o christian_n neglect_v obscure_a and_o deprave_a that_o they_o shall_v have_v judge_v it_o necessary_a to_o set_v themselves_o upon_o the_o re-establish_a of_o it_o chap._n vii_o a_o answer_n to_o the_o objection_n of_o the_o twelve_o and_o thirteen_o chapter_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la to_o understand_v well_o what_o be_v in_o the_o twelve_o chapter_n of_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la we_o must_v in_o the_o first_o place_n take_v notice_n of_o the_o design_n he_o propound_v to_o himself_o and_o the_o mean_n he_o make_v use_v of_o to_o reach_v it_o as_o to_o his_o design_n he_o explain_v himself_o in_o the_o very_a title_n of_o the_o chapter_n which_o bear_v this_o that_o the_o spirit_n of_o a_o politician_n every_o way_n humane_a that_o appear_v in_o the_o difference_n that_o the_o calvinist_n 12._o have_v have_v with_o the_o lutheran_n give_v a_o right_a to_o reject_v they_o without_o any_o further_a examination_n as_o a_o sort_n of_o man_n without_o any_o conscience_n he_o explain_v himself_o yet_o further_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o discourse_n after_o this_o manner_n it_o have_v be_v demand_v say_v he_o of_o the_o calvinist_n with_o good_a reason_n how_o it_o can_v come_v to_o pass_v that_o if_o luther_n zuinglius_fw-la and_o calvin_n have_v receive_v a_o mission_n from_o god_n and_o be_v the_o instrument_n that_o he_o make_v choice_n of_o for_o the_o great_a work_n that_o ever_o be_v which_o be_v the_o reformation_n of_o the_o error_n of_o sixteen_o century_n they_o shall_v not_o avoid_v be_v open_o divide_v between_o themselves_o to_o dismember_v themselves_o from_o one_o another_o to_o persecute_v one_o another_o after_o so_o outrageous_a a_o manner_n and_o to_o treat_v one_o another_o as_o the_o declare_a enemy_n of_o god_n and_o his_o church_n he_o explain_v himself_o also_o in_o another_o place_n where_o he_o speak_v after_o this_o manner_n the_o innocence_n or_o the_o crime_n of_o luther_n equal_o condemn_v the_o calvinist_n either_o for_o have_v declaim_v against_o a_o innocent_a person_n or_o for_o have_v give_v unjust_a praise_n to_o one_o of_o the_o most_o wicked_a man_n that_o ever_o be_v and_o that_o monstrous_a conjunction_n which_o they_o have_v make_v in_o his_o person_n of_o holiness_n with_o the_o most_o detestable_a crime_n be_v a_o evident_a proof_n that_o they_o have_v not_o the_o least_o idea_n of_o christian_a virtue_n nor_o of_o the_o spirit_n of_o christianity_n see_v yet_o further_o how_o he_o speak_v in_o the_o same_o chapter_n if_o luther_n be_v a_o instrument_n of_o the_o devil_n a_o wicked_a person_n a_o schismatic_a a_o violent_a and_o passionate_a man_n what_o will_v become_v of_o
the_o reformation_n that_o he_o have_v establish_v and_o which_o serve_v as_o a_o foundation_n to_o that_o of_o the_o calvinist_n in_o fine_a he_o explain_v himself_o in_o the_o 321_o page_n where_o he_o say_v that_o our_o behaviour_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o lutheran_n be_v enough_o to_o give_v a_o ground_n to_o conclude_v that_o the_o head_n of_o the_o party_n of_o the_o calvinist_n have_v be_v such_o as_o have_v guide_v themselves_o more_o by_o policy_n then_o conscience_n which_o be_v add_v he_o most_o contrary_a to_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o remote_a from_o that_o which_o ought_v to_o be_v find_v in_o those_o new_a prophet_n which_o he_o will_v extraordinary_o raise_v up_o for_o the_o reform_n of_o his_o church_n it_o be_v not_o possible_a for_o we_o to_o take_v they_o for_o man_n of_o that_o kind_n and_o we_o have_v a_o most_o just_a ground_n to_o refuse_v to_o hearken_v to_o they_o it_o result_v from_o thence_o that_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la have_v a_o design_n to_o conclude_v 1._o that_o they_o ought_v to_o reject_v we_o without_o examine_v any_o thing_n that_o we_o say_v and_o without_o so_o much_o as_o hear_v we_o 2._o that_o we_o be_v a_o sort_n of_o man_n without_o any_o conscience_n who_o have_v no_o idea_n of_o christian_a virtue_n nor_o of_o the_o spirit_n of_o christianity_n and_o who_o guide_v ourselves_o by_o worldly_a policy_n 3._o that_o we_o overthrow_v the_o reformation_n of_o luther_n which_o serve_v nevertheless_o for_o the_o foundation_n of_o our_o own_o 4._o that_o our_o first_o reformer_n have_v none_o of_o their_o mission_n from_o god_n and_o that_o they_o be_v not_o the_o instrument_n which_o he_o make_v choice_n of_o to_o reform_v the_o error_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o establish_v these_o proposition_n he_o heighten_v on_o one_o side_n the_o difference_n that_o be_v between_o luther_n zuinglius_fw-la and_o calvin_n and_o all_o that_o the_o heat_n of_o disputation_n make_v they_o say_v on_o one_o side_n and_o on_o the_o other_o and_o in_o the_o end_n he_o set_v down_o the_o esteem_n that_o we_o have_v always_o have_v of_o luther_n notwithstanding_o those_o division_n and_o the_o condescension_n that_o we_o have_v for_o he_o and_o those_o of_o his_o party_n in_o opposition_n to_o the_o hatred_n that_o we_o have_v always_o say_v he_o testify_v against_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n all_o that_o unjust_a reason_v be_v found_v upon_o divers_a false_a proposition_n that_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la have_v suppose_v as_o evident_a and_o beyond_o all_o doubt_n and_o of_o which_o notwithstanding_o he_o have_v captious_o suppress_v one_o part_n to_o give_v the_o more_o colour_n to_o his_o invective_n 1._o his_o reason_v be_v found_v upon_o '_o this_o proposition_n that_o we_o hold_v our_o first_o reformer_n to_o be_v new_a prophet_n or_o as_o he_o speak_v to_o be_v the_o apostle_n of_o a_o new_a gospel_n but_o this_o be_v a_o false_a and_o calumnious_a supposition_n for_o we_o hold_v on_o the_o contrary_a that_o our_o reformer_n preach_v nothing_o new_a they_o be_v not_o under_o the_o quality_n either_o of_o new_a prophet_n or_o apostle_n of_o a_o new_a gospel_n they_o do_v not_o boast_v that_o they_o bring_v a_o new_a revelation_n into_o the_o world_n but_o they_o only_o oppose_v humane_a error_n that_o have_v no_o foundation_n in_o the_o old_a revelation_n and_o in_o that_o respect_n i_o have_v show_v that_o they_o have_v a_o more_o than_o sufficient_a call_n in_o the_o right_n that_o be_v common_a to_o all_o christian_n and_o in_o the_o ministry_n which_o they_o themselves_o exercise_v in_o the_o latin_a church_n without_o any_o necessity_n that_o there_o shall_v be_v any_o extraordinary_a and_o immediate_a mission_n of_o god_n for_o that_o and_o i_o have_v explain_v in_o what_o sense_n it_o must_v be_v understand_v that_o there_o be_v something_o of_o extraordinary_a in_o their_o call_n 2._o that_o reason_v suppose_n that_o we_o ought_v not_o to_o hear_v any_o reformer_n till_o first_o we_o have_v examine_v the_o quality_n of_o their_o person_n and_o if_o the_o quality_n of_o their_o person_n do_v not_o satisfy_v we_o we_o ought_v to_o reject_v their_o word_n and_o to_o remain_v in_o the_o state_n we_o be_v in_o before_o but_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o pernicious_a than_o this_o principle_n to_o which_o i_o oppose_v a_o contrary_a principle_n which_o be_v that_o we_o ought_v to_o judge_v of_o that_o which_o our_o reformer_n say_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o by_o the_o proper_a character_n of_o truth_n or_o falsehood_n which_o be_v in_o the_o thing_n themselves_o after_o a_o manner_n abstract_v from_o the_o judgement_n that_o we_o may_v make_v of_o those_o person_n and_o that_o it_o be_v a_o way_n to_o error_n to_o judge_n by_o the_o quality_n of_o the_o person_n this_o be_v that_o which_o i_o have_v make_v appear_v elsewhere_o and_o shall_v not_o omit_v to_o establish_v it_o yet_o further_o in_o this_o place_n for_o the_o great_a clear_n of_o this_o truth_n i_o say_v then_o that_o when_o it_o fall_v out_o that_o those_o who_o preach_v have_v personal_a quality_n that_o do_v not_o satisfy_v we_o it_o be_v indeed_o a_o reason_n that_o oblige_v we_o to_o take_v the_o great_a heed_n to_o their_o doctrine_n but_o those_o matter_n be_v at_o the_o bottom_n as_o they_o be_v true_a or_o false_a in_o themselves_o without_o the_o person_n that_o propound_v they_o change_v their_o nature_n they_o ought_v to_o be_v chief_o consider_v in_o themselves_o if_o we_o will_v assure_v ourselves_o in_o a_o good_a conscience_n that_o we_o be_v in_o the_o way_n of_o truth_n for_o we_o can_v have_v that_o assurance_n if_o we_o judge_v only_o by_o the_o person_n since_o the_o faith_n be_v immediate_o found_v upon_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o not_o upon_o that_o of_o man_n whosoever_o they_o be_v moreover_o every_o one_o know_v that_o a_o judgement_n concern_v person_n be_v oftentime_o far_o hard_o and_o more_o subject_a to_o error_n then_o that_o of_o the_o thing_n themselves_o whether_o it_o be_v because_o ordinary_o it_o depend_v upon_o a_o great_a number_n of_o particular_a circumstance_n which_o one_o can_v exact_o know_v and_o which_o yet_o one_o ought_v to_o know_v before_o a_o man_n can_v be_v able_a to_o judge_n or_o whether_o it_o be_v also_o because_o it_o be_v open_a to_o the_o illusion_n of_o hypocrisy_n which_o hide_v real_a vice_n under_o the_o appearance_n of_o virtue_n and_o to_o those_o of_o calumny_n which_o turn_v the_o best_a action_n into_o a_o bad_a meaning_n that_o suppress_v the_o good_a and_o heighten_v the_o bad_a beside_o that_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o judgement_n which_o be_v make_v of_o person_n ought_v partly_o to_o depend_v on_o that_o of_o thing_n so_o far_o be_v it_o from_o that_o that_o what_o be_v make_v of_o thing_n shall_v depend_v on_o that_o of_o person_n for_o on_o the_o one_o side_n how_o many_o founder_n of_o heresy_n have_v there_o be_v who_o life_n have_v appear_v to_o have_v be_v very_o exemplary_a and_o who_o be_v notwithstanding_o ravenous_a wolf_n how_o many_o pharisee_n who_o have_v boast_v of_o their_o righteousness_n while_o their_o doctrine_n be_v a_o leaven_n whereof_o great_a heed_n be_v to_o be_v take_v there_o have_v be_v some_o who_o have_v even_o go_v so_o far_o as_o to_o have_v wrought_v miracle_n and_o jesus_n christ_n have_v foretell_v that_o false_a christ_n and_o false_a prophet_n shall_v arise_v who_o shall_v work_v great_a sign_n and_o wonder_n capable_a of_o seduce_v the_o very_a elect_n if_o it_o be_v possible_a and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n do_v not_o sufficient_o understand_v the_o way_n of_o divine_a providence_n to_o be_v able_a to_o conclude_v without_o rashness_n that_o it_o never_o make_v use_v of_o person_n guilty_a of_o many_o crime_n either_o for_o the_o propagation_n of_o its_o truth_n or_o the_o reformation_n of_o error_n saint_n paul_n say_v that_o god_n put_v his_o treasure_n into_o earthen_a 7._o vessel_n that_o the_o excellency_n of_o his_o power_n may_v be_v of_o god_n and_o not_o of_o man_n the_o same_o apostle_n teach_v we_o that_o divers_a in_o his_o time_n preach_v jesus_n christ_n out_o of_o a_o spirit_n of_o envy_n and_o contention_n god_n heretofore_o make_v use_n of_o solomon_n not_o only_o for_o the_o building_n and_o preservation_n of_o his_o temple_n but_o also_o to_o give_v the_o church_n one_o part_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o its_o scripture_n which_o be_v much_o more_o than_o the_o temple_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o that_o prince_n give_v himself_o over_o to_o the_o love_n of_o woman_n and_o fall_v into_o idolatry_n and_o last_o jesus_n christ_n make_v use_v of_o a_o judas_n at_o first_o that_o sell_v he_o into_o his_o enemy_n hand_n but_o to_o decide_v this_o question_n by_o example_n draw_v out_o of_o the_o
themselves_o if_o they_o shall_v yield_v any_o obedience_n to_o their_o sovereign_n on_o the_o other_o side_n clement_n vii_o who_o keep_v his_o seat_n at_o avignon_n be_v not_o want_v to_o proceed_v against_o vrban_n and_o his_o follower_n and_o to_o treat_v he_o and_o his_o party_n with_o the_o same_o heat_n that_o vrban_n have_v show_v against_o he_o see_v here_o difference_n which_o be_v methinks_v sufficient_o heighten_v notwithstanding_o whatsoever_o animosity_n there_o be_v there_o between_o those_o two_o party_n whatsoever_o war_n they_o make_v one_o against_o another_o whatsoever_o anathema_n they_o mutual_o thunder_v out_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v not_o fail_v to_o own_o and_o canonize_v for_o saint_n those_o person_n who_o live_v and_o die_v in_o those_o two_o contrary_a obedience_n and_o who_o even_o die_v in_o the_o hot_a quarrel_n of_o those_o two_o anti-popes_n for_o she_o have_v canonize_v on_o the_o one_o side_n saint_n catherine_n of_o sienna_n who_o take_v part_n with_o vrban_n and_o who_o treat_v his_o competitor_n as_o antichrist_n and_o a_o member_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o his_o cardinal_n as_o devil_n incarnate_a and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n she_o have_v canonize_v peter_n of_o 6._o luxemburg_n who_o die_v the_o cardinal_n of_o clement_n vii_o and_o who_o have_v receive_v that_o dignity_n from_o his_o hand_n against_o the_o express_a prohibition_n of_o vrban_n vi_o under_o pain_n of_o excommunication_n so_o that_o here_o be_v two_o saint_n on_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o side_n lawful_o excommunicate_v mr._n daille_n in_o his_o answer_n to_o the_o monsieurs_fw-fr adam_n and_o cottiby_n intend_v 14._o to_o retort_v this_o same_o objection_n that_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la give_v we_o have_v set_v before_o we_o the_o example_n of_o saint_n jerome_n and_o saint_n cyril_n of_o alexandria_n who_o be_v cruel_o and_o passionate_o carry_v out_o against_o saint_n john_n chrysostom_n so_o far_o as_o to_o compare_v his_o fall_n to_o the_o fall_n of_o babylon_n and_o to_o call_v he_o traitor_n judas_n jechonias_n he_o have_v also_o allege_v the_o example_n of_o stephen_n bishop_n of_o rome_n who_o in_o the_o quarrel_n that_o he_o have_v with_o saint_n cyprian_n call_v he_o a_o false_a christ_n a_o false_a apostle_n and_o deceitful_a worker_n but_o the_o author_n 311._o of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la do_v not_o think_v that_o these_o example_n be_v to_o the_o purpose_n he_o say_v that_o the_o difference_n between_o saint_n chrysostome_n and_o saint_n jerome_n and_o saint_n cyril_n respect_v only_o personal_a action_n in_o which_o none_o ever_o deny_v but_o that_o it_o may_v happen_v to_o the_o saint_n themselves_o to_o be_v surprise_v in_o respect_n of_o one_o another_o but_o this_o be_v only_o a_o shift_n for_o if_o we_o may_v understand_v that_o it_o have_v happen_v to_o the_o saint_n to_o be_v violent_o carry_v out_o against_o another_o saint_n after_o the_o fierce_a manner_n in_o the_o world_n upon_o personal_a difference_n which_o have_v no_o other_o foundation_n than_o a_o surprise_n i_o see_v not_o why_o we_o may_v not_o also_o understand_v that_o it_o may_v happen_v to_o good_a man_n to_o be_v violent_o carry_v out_o against_o one_o another_o about_o the_o point_n of_o religion_n which_o afford_v a_o more_o just_a pretence_n of_o animosity_n when_o each_o think_v he_o have_v the_o truth_n of_o his_o side_n before_o i_o let_v go_v this_o example_n i_o can_v forbear_v note_v by_o the_o by_o that_o it_o be_v but_o very_o ill_a to_o the_o purpose_n that_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la censure_n m._n daille_n for_o have_v say_v that_o theophilus_n of_o alexandria_n and_o epiphanius_n have_v condemn_v excommunicate_v and_o depose_v chrysostom_n from_o his_o bishopric_n for_o it_o be_v evident_a to_o those_o who_o be_v not_o ignorant_a of_o history_n that_o theophilus_n condemn_v and_o depose_v he_o and_o that_o epiphanius_n be_v go_v to_o constantinople_n before_o that_o same_o condemnation_n refuse_v to_o hold_v communion_n with_o chrysostom_n which_o be_v precise_o that_o which_o m._n daille_n will_v have_v say_v but_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la do_v not_o answer_v i_o better_o upon_o the_o quarrel_n of_o saint_n cyprian_n and_o stephen_n their_o difference_n say_v he_o be_v only_o upon_o a_o point_n which_o have_v not_o then_o be_v decide_v by_o the_o church_n this_o evasion_n 312._o be_v very_o pitiful_a the_o more_o trivial_a the_o occasion_n be_v about_o which_o one_o be_v violent_a that_o passion_n be_v both_o the_o more_o unblamable_a and_o the_o prejudice_n against_o the_o person_n who_o be_v so_o carry_v away_o with_o it_o be_v the_o better_o ground_v to_o answer_v after_o that_o manner_n aggravate_v the_o passion_n of_o stephen_n in_o stead_n of_o excuse_v it_o stephen_n add_v he_o who_o have_v more_o reason_n at_o the_o bottom_n be_v carry_v out_o by_o the_o ardour_n of_o his_o zealonly_a to_o some_o threat_n of_o excommunication_n or_o if_o you_o will_v to_o a_o excommunication_n which_o have_v have_v no_o ground_n will_v have_v produce_v no_o real_a division_n and_o will_v not_o have_v hinder_v but_o that_o saint_n cyprian_a shall_v still_o have_v be_v honour_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o saint_n stephen_n by_o that_o of_o africa_n it_o be_v not_o certain_a that_o stephen_n have_v more_o reason_n at_o the_o bottom_n than_o saint_n cyprian_n on_o the_o contrary_a there_o be_v in_o their_o day_n as_o many_o heretic_n at_o least_o who_o baptism_n ought_v to_o have_v be_v reject_v as_o there_o be_v who_o ought_v to_o have_v be_v admit_v and_o as_o for_o the_o rest_n whether_o stephen_n have_v in_o effect_n excommunicate_v saint_n cyprian_n or_o whether_o he_o have_v mere_o threaten_v it_o what_o be_v that_o to_o our_o question_n if_o he_o content_v himself_o with_o a_o mere_a threaten_v of_o it_o he_o remain_v in_o communion_n with_o a_o man_n who_o he_o call_v a_o false_a christ_n a._n false_a apostle_n a._n deceitful_a worker_n and_o with_o a_o man_n who_o on_o his_o part_n he_o accuse_v of_o stupidity_n of_o pride_n of_o obstinacy_n of_o presumption_n of_o folly_n of_o blindness_n of_o mind_n and_o of_o wickedness_n he_o abide_v in_o communion_n with_o firmilianus_n who_o have_v the_o same_o interest_n with_o saint_n cyprian_n and_o who_o also_o accuse_v stephen_n of_o inhumanity_n boldness_n of_o insolence_n of_o schism_n and_o manifest_a folly_n who_o compare_v he_o to_o judas_n and_o say_v of_o he_o that_o he_o take_v part_n with_o heretic_n if_o he_o actual_o excommunicate_v they_o it_o further_a note_n the_o excess_n of_o his_o passion_n which_o can_v not_o in_o effect_n have_v be_v judge_v to_o have_v be_v less_o than_o a_o passion_n and_o a_o violent_a heat_n since_o according_a to_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la himself_o it_o will_v have_v have_v no_o ground_n and_o will_v not_o have_v hinder_v but_o that_o saint_n cyprian_a shall_v have_v be_v always_o honour_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n since_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la be_v in_o the_o way_n to_o refute_v the_o answer_n of_o m._n daille_n it_o have_v possible_o more_o conduce_v to_o the_o public_a edification_n if_o in_o stead_n of_o shallow_o insist_v on_o those_o remote_a example_n he_o have_v apply_v himself_o to_o that_o wherein_n m._n daille_n adjoin_v the_o fierce_a injury_n wherewith_o the_o divine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n may_v be_v every_o day_n see_v to_o rend_v one_o another_o although_o they_o then_o remain_v and_o though_o they_o yet_o live_v in_o one_o and_o the_o same_o communion_n they_o acknowledge_v one_o another_o for_o brethren_n they_o assist_v at_o the_o same_o altar_n they_o call_v upon_o the_o same_o saint_n and_o yet_o nevertheless_o as_o m._n daille_n relate_v they_o write_v one_o against_o another_o after_o the_o most_o passionate_a and_o violent_a manner_n in_o the_o world_n one_o sort_n of_o they_o say_v of_o their_o adversary_n that_o they_o be_v infect_v with_o heresy_n and_o be_v enemy_n of_o the_o apostolic_a see_v and_o that_o their_o opinion_n be_v full_a of_o heresy_n and_o perfidiousness_n that_o it_o be_v presumptuous_a injurious_a to_o the_o state_n of_o the_o religious_a and_o that_o it_o savour_v of_o calvinism_n and_o to_o speak_v plain_o that_o it_o be_v erroneous_a in_o the_o faith_n that_o it_o open_o stifle_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o father_n that_o it_o be_v blasphemous_a against_o jesus_n christ_n and_o all_o the_o saint_n plain_o and_o evident_o heretical_a and_o contrary_a to_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n the_o other_o say_v on_o the_o contrary_a that_o the_o proposition_n which_o they_o have_v lay_v down_o be_v false_a rash_a presumptuous_a pernicious_a to_o all_o faithful_a people_n that_o they_o be_v erroneous_a and_o injurious_a to_o the_o bishop_n tend_v to_o overthrow_v or_o disturb_v the_o hierarchy_n and_o that_o
have_v we_o that_o we_o shall_v be_v with_o she_o for_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o lutheran_n the_o business_n be_v only_o about_o a_o mere_a toleration_n which_o we_o give_v to_o those_o among_o they_o who_o desire_v it_o with_o a_o spirit_n of_o charity_n wait_v till_o it_o shall_v please_v god_n to_o dissipate_v their_o error_n but_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o call_v itself_o infallible_a will_v have_v we_o not_o only_o to_o have_v a_o mere_a toleration_n for_o she_o but_o that_o we_o shall_v make_v a_o profession_n of_o believe_v all_o that_o she_o believe_v for_o when_o she_o separate_v herself_o from_o we_o she_o anathematise_v all_o those_o who_o do_v not_o believe_v all_o that_o she_o have_v decide_v in_o her_o council_n of_o trent_n the_o matter_n therefore_o be_v not_o equal_a between_o the_o roman_a and_o the_o lutheran_n communion_n in_o respect_n of_o we_o to_o put_v they_o into_o a_o equality_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o the_o roman_a church_n shall_v open_o put_v herself_o into_o the_o state_n wherein_o the_o lutheran_n be_v that_o she_o renounce_v the_o invocation_n of_o saint_n religious_a worship_n of_o image_n humane_a satisfaction_n indulgence_n purgatory_n the_o worship_v of_o relic_n the_o public_a service_n in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n the_o merit_n of_o good_a work_n transubstantiation_n adoration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mess_n the_o papal_a monarchy_n the_o pretention_n of_o infallibility_n the_o blind_a obedience_n that_o she_o will_v have_v we_o give_v to_o her_o decision_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o she_o shall_v acknowledge_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o only_a rule_n of_o faith_n and_o manner_n that_o she_o shall_v careful_o recommend_v the_o read_n of_o they_o to_o the_o people_n that_o she_o shall_v confess_v their_o sufficiency_n without_o the_o help_n of_o tradition_n that_o she_o shall_v believe_v the_o authority_n of_o that_o scripture_n independent_a even_o in_o respect_n of_o we_o on_o that_o of_o the_o church_n that_o she_o shall_v distinct_o lay_v down_o the_o doctrine_n of_o justification_n and_o that_o of_o the_o distinction_n of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o gospel_n that_o she_o shall_v form_v a_o just_a idea_n of_o the_o faith_n and_o of_o good_a work_n and_o that_o she_o shall_v take_v care_n to_o abolish_v all_o the_o popular_a superstition_n which_o we_o behold_v among_o they_o when_o she_o shall_v have_v do_v all_o that_o with_o some_o other_o thing_n which_o the_o lutheran_n have_v do_v also_o although_o she_o do_v retain_v the_o point_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n after_o the_o same_o manner_n that_o they_o do_v we_o shall_v not_o fail_v to_o offer_v she_o the_o same_o toleration_n which_o we_o yield_v to_o the_o lutheran_n and_o the_o same_o condition_n which_o we_o give_v to_o they_o which_o be_v that_o we_o shall_v not_o engage_v ourselves_o to_o believe_v that_o presence_n that_o we_o shall_v always_o protest_v against_o it_o as_o a_o error_n and_o that_o they_o shall_v do_v nothing_o to_o force_v we_o to_o embrace_v it_o when_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n shall_v be_v in_o that_o condition_n which_o i_o have_v set_v down_o if_o we_o do_v not_o make_v she_o these_o offer_n if_o we_o do_v not_o even_o make_v they_o with_o all_o the_o ardour_n imaginable_a we_o will_v be_v very_o well_o content_v in_o that_o case_n that_o they_o shall_v accuse_v we_o of_o humane_a policy_n and_o that_o they_o shall_v tell_v we_o that_o we_o be_v a_o sort_n of_o man_n without_o any_o conscience_n justice_n and_o charity_n but_o till_o than_o we_o will_v take_v god_n and_o man_n to_o witness_v that_o there_o be_v not_o the_o least_o equity_n in_o those_o invective_n and_o that_o it_o be_v to_o oppress_v our_o innocency_n to_o ascribe_v that_o as_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la have_v do_v to_o a_o interest_v policy_n or_o a_o capricious_a humour_n which_o be_v but_o too_o well_o found_v upon_o the_o thing_n themselves_o see_v here_o what_o i_o have_v to_o say_v upon_o the_o twelve_o chapter_n of_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la it_o may_v now_o be_v judge_v of_o what_o force_n his_o accusation_n be_v we_o shall_v after_o that_o pass_v on_o to_o his_o thirteen_o chapter_n but_o as_o that_o chapter_n be_v but_o a_o send_v we_o to_o a_o book_n of_o mounseur_fw-fr arnaud_n entitle_v the_o overthrow_n of_o the_o moral_n of_o jesus_n christ_n by_o the_o calvinist_n i_o shall_v also_o content_v myself_o with_o refer_v my_o reader_n to_o the_o answer_n which_o i_o hope_v to_o make_v he_o it_o shall_v suffice_v for_o the_o present_a to_o say_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o saint_n perseverance_n as_o the_o synod_n of_o dort_n have_v lay_v it_o down_o be_v a_o doctrine_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o that_o all_o the_o pretend_a consequence_n which_o monsieur_n arnaud_n will_v draw_v from_o it_o be_v of_o the_o same_o nature_n of_o those_o which_o profane_a person_n draw_v from_o all_o the_o doctrine_n of_o religion_n when_o they_o will_v abuse_v they_o to_o their_o ruin_n chap._n viii_o that_o our_o father_n in_o their_o design_n of_o reform_v themselves_o be_v bind_v to_o take_v the_o holy_a scripture_n alone_o for_o the_o rule_n of_o their_o faith_n it_o it_o now_o necessary_a to_o examine_v by_o what_o principle_n or_o upon_o what_o rule_n our_o father_n proceed_v in_o their_o reformation_n but_o before_o we_o go_v any_o further_a we_o shall_v do_v well_o to_o weigh_v what_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la say_v who_o have_v make_v a_o express_a chapter_n upon_o this_o matter_n the_o argument_n of_o that_o chapter_n be_v frame_v in_o these_o word_n that_o the_o way_n which_o the_o calvinist_n 14._o propound_v to_o instruct_v man_n in_o the_o truth_n be_v ridiculous_a and_o impossible_a after_o have_v enter_v upon_o his_o subject_n as_o the_o matter_n be_v say_v he_o about_o the_o promise_n which_o they_o make_v of_o discover_v divers_a truth_n of_o the_o faith_n to_o the_o catholic_n which_o be_v in_o their_o judgement_n obscure_v and_o quite_o alter_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n there_o will_v be_v nothing_o more_o just_a or_o more_o natural_a then_o in_o the_o first_o place_n to_o inquire_v into_o the_o way_n which_o they_o will_v take_v to_o perform_v it_o to_o the_o end_n that_o we_o may_v judge_v by_o the_o very_a nature_n of_o that_o way_n what_o we_o may_v just_o expect_v for_o if_o it_o be_v find_v that_o they_o will_v engage_v we_o in_o a_o infinite_a way_n and_o which_o can_v not_o come_v to_o a_o issue_n there_o can_v not_o be_v a_o more_o lawful_a excuse_n to_o hinder_v we_o from_o harken_v to_o they_o nor_o a_o more_o evident_a conviction_n of_o the_o rashness_n of_o their_o enterprise_n behold_v here_o methinks_v two_o declaration_n of_o that_o author_n sufficient_o express_v concern_v the_o mean_n which_o we_o propound_v to_o instruct_v man_n in_o the_o truth_n the_o one_o that_o it_o be_v a_o ridiculous_a and_o impossible_a way_n and_o the_o other_o that_o it_o be_v a_o infinite_a way_n etc._n etc._n and_o which_o can_v come_v to_o no_o issue_n for_o we_o may_v well_o perceive_v that_o that_o periphrasis_n of_o expression_n if_o it_o be_v find_v that_o they_o will_v engage_v we_o in_o a_o infinite_a way_n etc._n etc._n make_v use_n of_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o a_o disputation_n mean_n that_o it_o will_v be_v so_o find_v in_o effect_n and_o that_o it_o be_v as_o much_o as_o if_o it_o have_v be_v positive_o say_v they_o will_v engage_v we_o in_o a_o infinite_a way_n and_o which_o have_v no_o end_n there_o be_v no_o other_o difference_n between_o those_o two_o expression_n unless_o that_o this_o latter_a be_v the_o more_o plain_a and_o that_o the_o other_o have_v more_o of_o the_o air_n of_o the_o philosophical_a method_n of_o those_o gentleman_n after_o that_o preamble_n the_o author_n go_v on_o it_o be_v true_a say_v he_o that_o if_o we_o will_v hear_v they_o speak_v upon_o this_o subject_n without_o any_o more_o deep_a searehing_n into_o that_o which_o they_o say_v we_o shall_v have_v reason_n enough_o to_o be_v satisfy_v for_o they_o bald_o promise_v to_o lead_v we_o to_o the_o faith_n by_o a_o short_a a_o easy_a and_o a_o clear_a way_n without_o confusion_n without_o danger_n of_o wander_v aside_o and_o this_o way_n say_v they_o be_v the_o examination_n of_o the_o article_n of_o the_o faith_n by_o the_o scripture_n which_o be_v the_o only_a rule_n that_o god_n have_v give_v we_o for_o the_o decide_n of_o the_o difference_n of_o religion_n and_o assure_v we_o of_o what_o we_o ought_v to_o believe_v all_o other_o be_v subject_n to_o error_n this_o be_v the_o explication_n of_o the_o way_n which_o we_o propose_v which_o be_v to_o take_v the_o holy_a scripture_n for_o the_o only_a rule_n of_o our_o faith_n he_o add_v but_o because_o in_o a_o
visible_a and_o transfigure_v into_o a_o angel_n of_o light_n and_o in_o the_o shape_n of_o a_o preacher_n in_o the_o chair_n of_o truth_n and_o what_o else_o 17._o will_v he_o persuade_v the_o faithful_a too_o but_o that_o the_o faithful_a aught_o to_o take_v very_o great_a heed_n not_o to_o read_v the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o not_o to_o meditate_v day_n and_o night_n upon_o the_o word_n of_o life_n that_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n have_v dictate_v to_o the_o prophet_n and_o which_o god_n the_o father_n have_v give_v to_o his_o son_n for_o the_o instruction_n of_o his_o church_n and_o to_o draw_v it_o from_o the_o corruption_n of_o the_o world_n to_o render_v it_o holy_a and_o without_o spot_n to_o his_o father_n who_o give_v it_o to_o he_o jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o live_v by_o that_o word_n and_o to_o make_v his_o church_n live_v he_o give_v it_o his_o word_n in_o a_o intelligible_a tongue_n out_o of_o his_o own_o mouth_n and_o by_o his_o disciple_n search_v say_v he_o and_o examine_v careful_o the_o scripture_n for_o they_o be_v they_o which_o testify_v of_o i_o thus_o it_o be_v that_o they_o speak_v of_o it_o sometime_o jesus_n christ_n give_v his_o scripture_n to_o the_o faithful_a with_o a_o commandment_n to_o read_v it_o to_o examine_v it_o careful_o and_o to_o hear_v it_o it_o be_v the_o judge_n of_o the_o beleif_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o difficulty_n and_o question_n that_o arise_v in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o faith_n and_o manner_n the_o parishioner_n make_v use_v of_o they_o against_o their_o bishop_n they_o encounter_v even_o their_o ordinance_n by_o passage_n out_o of_o that_o scripture_n they_o maintain_v that_o the_o use_n of_o they_o belong_v to_o all_o christian_n by_o a_o natural_a right_n and_o that_o to_o go_v about_o to_o deprive_v they_o of_o they_o be_v to_o do_v a_o action_n of_o the_o devil_n but_o now_o a_o day_n they_o speak_v no_o more_o after_o that_o manner_n for_o they_o tell_v we_o on_o the_o contrary_a that_o it_o be_v a_o ridiculous_a and_o impossible_a way_n to_o instruct_v man_n in_o the_o truth_n a_o infinite_a way_n which_o have_v no_o issue_n and_o which_o be_v of_o so_o excessive_a a_o length_n that_o whatsoever_o diligence_n we_o shall_v use_v we_o can_v never_o arrive_v to_o the_o end_n and_o they_o labour_v to_o heap_v difficulty_n upon_o difficulty_n to_o drive_v they_o back_o and_o to_o make_v a_o labyrinth_n full_a of_o circle_n and_o confuse_a way_n that_o so_o out_o of_o a_o fear_n of_o those_o confusion_n the_o world_n shall_v take_v heed_n of_o enter_v into_o it_o for_o my_o own_o part_n i_o free_o acknowledge_v that_o i_o can_v comprehend_v nothing_o in_o all_o that_o for_o if_o before_o one_o can_v assure_v one_o self_n of_o one_o only_a passage_n of_o scripture_n whatsoever_o it_o be_v we_o must_v needs_o go_v through_o a_o thousand_o tedious_a way_n and_o overcome_v a_o thousand_o obstacle_n that_o arise_v from_o the_o question_n about_o the_o canonical_a book_n about_o the_o conformity_n of_o the_o translation_n with_o the_o original_n about_o the_o different_a manner_n of_o read_v the_o passage_n and_o about_o the_o difference_n of_o interpretation_n as_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la will_v have_v it_o according_a to_o his_o ordinary_a exaggeration_n to_o what_o purpose_n be_v it_o to_o give_v the_o public_a a_o translation_n which_o after_o the_o manner_n that_o it_o be_v give_v and_o receive_v in_o can_v but_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o great_a part_n of_o those_o difficulty_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o they_o put_v it_o into_o all_o man_n hand_n as_o well_o the_o ignorant_a as_o the_o learned_a as_o well_o of_o the_o simple_a as_o the_o more_o enlighten_v as_o well_o to_o woman_n as_o to_o man_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v not_o declare_v it_o authentic_a two_o bishop_n and_o a_o doctor_n have_v approve_v it_o but_o two_o archbishop_n and_o a_o cardinal_n have_v forbid_v it_o and_o yet_o one_o have_v not_o fail_v notwithstanding_o those_o prohibition_n to_o maintain_v that_o all_o the_o world_n ought_v to_o read_v they_o and_o that_o that_o forbid_v they_o be_v a_o violence_n a_o novelty_n a_o unexampled_a enterprise_n a_o bold_a attempt_n upon_o the_o liberty_n that_o god_n have_v give_v to_o the_o church_n ransom_v at_o the_o 30._o price_n of_o the_o blood_n of_o his_o own_o son_n that_o it_o be_v a_o usurpation_n and_o the_o introduce_v of_o a_o tyrannical_a authority_n that_o be_v never_o exercise_v in_o the_o church_n until_o this_o day_n and_o that_o every_o one_o be_v bind_v not_o only_o not_o to_o obey_v that_o ordinance_n but_o even_o to_o have_v a_o horror_n for_o it_o and_o to_o resist_v it_o as_o much_o as_o he_o can_v what_o will_v then_o become_v of_o those_o difficulty_n and_o those_o unconquerable_a confufion_n which_o hinder_v they_o according_a to_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la so_o that_o they_o can_v assure_v themselves_o of_o one_o only_a passage_n of_o the_o scripture_n through_o the_o uncertaitty_n wherein_o a_o man_n be_v of_o the_o unfaithfulness_n of_o the_o translation_n through_o the_o ignorance_n wherein_o we_o be_v of_o the_o different_a manner_n of_o read_v those_o passage_n and_o through_o the_o necessity_n of_o consult_v interpreter_n be_v it_o because_o they_o will_v express_o engage_v the_o people_n in_o a_o infinite_a way_n and_o which_o can_v come_v to_o no_o issue_n and_o in_o a_o ridiculous_a way_n and_o which_o be_v impossible_a for_o the_o instruct_v of_o any_o in_o the_o truth_n or_o be_v it_o rather_o because_o they_o do_v not_o propound_v to_o themselves_o in_o that_o translation_n to_o instruct_v man_n in_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o faith_n but_o only_o to_o satisfy_v their_o curiosity_n and_o to_o make_v they_o read_v good_a french_a the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la may_v acknowledge_v therefore_o if_o he_o please_v that_o the_o heat_n of_o disputation_n have_v carry_v he_o beyond_o the_o bound_n of_o right_n and_o reason_n and_o the_o respect_n which_o he_o ought_v to_o have_v for_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o that_o in_o endeavour_v to_o have_v trouble_v we_o he_o have_v do_v it_o for_o himself_o and_o his_o friend_n for_o if_o that_o which_o he_o have_v propound_v be_v true_a they_o will_v give_v we_o a_o ground_n to_o accuse_v those_o who_o have_v publish_v the_o translation_n of_o mons_fw-la of_o rashness_n and_o imprudence_n and_o it_o will_v be_v nothing_o to_o the_o purpose_n to_o say_v that_o they_o publish_a it_o for_o those_o person_n who_o be_v already_o instruct_v in_o the_o truth_n which_o the_o church_n believe_v that_o therein_o they_o may_v receive_v a_o confirmation_n and_o increase_n of_o the_o faith_n by_o the_o conformity_n which_o they_o shall_v find_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n have_v with_o it_o and_o that_o it_o be_v necessary_a for_o that_o that_o they_o shall_v go_v through_o all_o the_o difficulty_n which_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la have_v work_v since_o the_o sole_a conformity_n of_o it_o with_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n will_v be_v sufficient_a to_o assure_v they_o that_o it_o be_v true_o the_o word_n of_o god_n i_o say_v that_o answer_n will_v not_o satisfy_v for_o beside_o that_o it_o be_v a_o injury_n to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o make_v the_o efficacy_n that_o it_o have_v in_o our_o soul_n to_o depend_v upon_o the_o conformity_n which_o it_o have_v with_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n whereas_o on_o the_o contrary_a the_o efficacy_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n ought_v to_o depend_v on_o its_o conformity_n with_o the_o word_n of_o god_n beside_o that_o the_o author_n of_o the_o preface_n say_v express_o that_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o simple_a sort_n may_v find_v that_o in_o his_o translation_n which_o be_v necessary_a for_o their_o instruction_n he_o say_v not_o those_o who_o shall_v be_v already_o instruct_v in_o that_o which_o the_o church_n teach_v but_o he_o say_v the_o simple_a sort_n he_o do_v not_o say_v that_o they_o will_v be_v confirm_v in_o the_o instruction_n which_o they_o have_v already_o but_o that_o they_o will_v find_v that_o which_o shall_v be_v necessary_a for_o their_o instruction_n and_o elsewhere_o he_o say_v that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o his_o translation_n for_o it_o be_v about_o the_o subject_a of_o that_o translation_n that_o he_o speak_v be_v the_o light_n of_o the_o blind_a and_o the_o life_n of_o the_o dead_a which_o signify_v that_o it_o give_v by_o itself_o the_o first_o impression_n of_o the_o spiritual_a life_n so_o that_o it_o be_v not_o in_o the_o view_n of_o the_o knowledge_n that_o the_o simple_a may_v have_v of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n that_o he_o publish_v that_o translation_n if_o we_o believe_v the_o
without_o a_o case_n of_o necessity_n but_o only_o at_o the_o solemn_a feast_n of_o easter_n and_o whitsuntide_n of_o give_v of_o milk_n and_o honey_n to_o the_o baptise_a of_o administer_a the_o eucharist_n to_o little_a child_n after_o baptism_n of_o pray_v stand_v upon_o the_o lord_n day_n and_o from_o easter_n till_o whitsuntide_n of_o celebrate_v the_o communion_n on_o the_o evening_n of_o fast-day_n of_o every_o one_o carry_v home_n with_o he_o a_o piece_n of_o the_o bread_n of_o the_o communion_n of_o distribute_v the_o cup_n to_o all_o the_o faithful_a communicant_n of_o receive_v the_o communion_n not_o on_o one_o knee_n but_o stand_v of_o mutual_o kiss_v one_o another_o before_o the_o communion_n and_o divers_a other_o which_o the_o latin_n have_v abrogate_a on_o the_o other_o side_n how_o many_o latin_a tradition_n be_v there_o which_o the_o use_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n authorise_v at_o this_o day_n of_o which_o we_o can_v find_v the_o least_o trace_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o which_o from_o thence_o visible_o discover_v themselves_o to_o be_v new_a and_o by_o consequence_n false_a and_o not_o apostolical_a as_o the_o worship_v of_o image_n invocation_n of_o saint_n transubstantiation_n adoration_n of_o the_o host_n use_v of_o altar_n that_o of_o light_n or_o taper_n mass_n without_o any_o communion_n the_o divine_a service_n in_o a_o tongue_n not_o understand_v by_o the_o people_n the_o sovereign_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n over_o all_o other_o church_n auricular_a confession_n the_o number_n of_o the_o seven_o sacrament_n and_o as_o many_o more_o that_o the_o primitive_a church_n which_o come_v near_a to_o the_o apostle_n never_o know_v as_o we_o have_v often_o justify_v from_o whence_o it_o follow_v that_o they_o be_v not_o apostolical_a and_o descend_v from_o that_o only_a and_o last_o revelation_n without_o which_o there_o be_v no_o word_n of_o god_n there_o be_v therefore_o nothing_o more_o improper_a to_o be_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n then_o that_o pretend_a tradition_n which_o be_v not_o establish_v upon_o any_o certain_a foundation_n which_o serve_v for_o a_o pretence_n to_o heretic_n which_o be_v embrace_v pro_fw-la and_o con_v which_o change_v according_a as_o time_n and_o place_n do_v and_o by_o the_o favour_n of_o which_o they_o may_v defend_v the_o great_a absurdiry_n by_o mere_o say_v that_o they_o be_v the_o tradition_n which_o the_o apostle_n transmit_v from_o their_o own_o mouth_n to_o their_o successor_n in_o a_o word_n if_o they_o will_v have_v we_o to_o believe_v a_o mystery_n with_o a_o divine_a faith_n if_o they_o will_v that_o we_o shall_v practice_v a_o worship_n with_o a_o persuasion_n that_o it_o be_v agreeable_a to_o god_n they_o ought_v to_o show_v we_o that_o that_o mystery_n and_o that_o worship_n proceed_v from_o the_o revelation_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n for_o without_o that_o all_o that_o be_v in_o the_o world_n be_v of_o man_n invention_n since_o after_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n there_o have_v be_v no_o revelation_n as_o we_o be_v both_o agree_v but_o they_o can_v only_o show_v we_o that_o by_o these_o two_o way_n either_o by_o that_o of_o the_o scripture_n in_o show_v we_o that_o those_o mystery_n and_o that_o worship_n be_v conformable_a to_o it_o or_o by_o that_o of_o transmission_n viva_fw-la voce_fw-la but_o as_o to_o that_o transmission_n viva_fw-la voce_fw-la we_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v able_a to_o have_v a_o divine_a certainty_n that_o we_o can_v have_v so_o much_o as_o a_o humane_a for_o the_o reason_n which_o i_o have_v allege_v which_o be_v that_o from_o the_o begin_n of_o christianity_n heretic_n have_v boast_v of_o they_o and_o yet_o they_o be_v not_o believe_v for_o they_o that_o the_o orthodox_n themselves_o be_v deceive_v in_o they_o allege_v they_o in_o false_a and_o vain_a thing_n which_o the_o follow_a age_n have_v reject_v that_o the_o schismatical_a church_n allege_v they_o against_o the_o latin_n and_o the_o latin_n against_o the_o schismatic_n without_o one_o side_n have_v any_o better_a ground_n than_o the_o other_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n set_v they_o before_o we_o for_o those_o new_a thing_n which_o the_o first_o age_n never_o know_v it_o remain_v therefore_o that_o the_o way_n of_o the_o conformity_n to_o the_o scripture_n upon_o which_o we_o be_v all_o agree_v be_v that_o in_o which_o the_o divine_a revelation_n be_v contain_v chap._n ix_o a_o examination_n of_o the_o objection_n which_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la make_v against_o the_o scripture_n but_o this_o way_n of_o the_o scripture_n according_a to_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la be_v infinite_a ridiculous_a impossible_a it_o have_v such_o consusion_n and_o length_n that_o we_o can_v come_v to_o the_o end_n of_o it_o with_o all_o our_o diligence_n the_o principle_n of_o the_o calvinist_n say_v he_o include_v all_o these_o maxim_n without_o which_o it_o can_v subsist_v 1._o that_o the_o church_n be_v not_o infallible_a in_o its_o decision_n concern_v the_o faith_n 2._o that_o tradition_n do_v not_o make_v any_o part_n of_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o faith_n 3._o that_o the_o scripture_n contain_v in_o general_a all_o the_o point_n of_o faith_n and_o so_o that_o whatsoever_o be_v not_o contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n can_v be_v of_o faith_n 4._o that_o it_o contain_v they_o clear_o and_o after_o a_o manner_n that_o be_v fit_v to_o the_o under_o stand_v of_o all_o the_o world_n so_o that_o the_o certainty_n of_o that_o way_n and_o the_o hope_n that_o we_o can_v rational_o conceive_v of_o it_o must_v depend_v upon_o the_o certainty_n of_o these_o maxim_n upon_o that_o we_o must_v note_v that_o it_o be_v not_o here_o question_v whether_o the_o scripture_n be_v divine_a or_o not_o but_o that_o suppose_v that_o it_o be_v so_o he_o say_v only_o that_o he_o must_v demand_v of_o we_o those_o formal_a and_o decisive_a passage_n that_o prove_v those_o four_o proposition_n and_o that_o when_o we_o do_v propose_v any_o one_o we_o must_v first_o be_v assure_v that_o it_o be_v take_v out_o of_o a_o canonical_a book_n and_o to_o that_o effect_n we_o must_v examine_v the_o controversy_n of_o the_o canonical_a book_n and_o see_v by_o what_o rule_v they_o may_v be_v know_v 2._o we_o must_v be_v certain_a that_o that_o passage_n be_v conformable_a to_o the_o original_a and_o to_o that_o effect_n we_o must_v consult_v the_o original_n 3._o we_o must_v be_v certain_a that_o there_o be_v not_o different_a way_n of_o read_v it_o that_o may_v weaken_v the_o proof_n 4._o that_o we_o must_v narrow_o see_v into_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o passage_n not_o to_o give_v it_o too_o great_a a_o latitude_n nor_o to_o blind_v ourselves_o with_o a_o appearance_n 5._o that_o we_o must_v see_v whether_o there_o be_v no_o expression_n or_o contrary_a passage_n which_o force_v we_o to_o take_v the_o passage_n in_o another_o sense_n 6._o that_o we_o ought_v to_o consult_v the_o interpreter_n of_o one_o side_n and_o of_o the_o other_o and_o to_o know_v what_o they_o say_v upon_o that_o passage_n 7._o that_o after_o this_o we_o must_v come_v to_o the_o distinction_n of_o fundamental_a point_n and_o those_o that_o be_v not_o fundamental_a and_o prove_v it_o by_o scripture_n 8._o that_o we_o must_v examine_v the_o passage_n which_o each_o sect_n produce_v in_o its_o favour_n 9_o that_o last_o after_o all_o this_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o a_o man_n shall_v trust_v his_o own_o eye_n and_o his_o memory_n which_o fail_v to_o go_v through_o all_o the_o former_a reason_n and_o preserve_v only_o a_o consused_a idea_n of_o they_o will_v not_o further_o allow_v he_o to_o make_v a_o just_a judgement_n of_o thing_n he_o conclude_v from_o thence_o that_o this_o way_n be_v not_o only_o interrupt_v with_o unconquerable_a difficulty_n and_o obstacle_n but_o that_o it_o be_v of_o a_o length_n so_o little_o proportion_v to_o man_n mind_n that_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o it_o can_v be_v that_o which_o god_n have_v choose_v to_o instruct_v we_o in_o the_o truth_n by_o which_o he_o will_v lead_v we_o to_o salvation_n for_o say_v he_o if_o they_o themselves_o who_o make_v a_o profession_n of_o spend_v all_o their_o life_n in_o the_o study_n of_o divinity_n aught_o to_o judge_v that_o examination_n to_o be_v above_o their_o ability_n what_o will_v become_v of_o those_o who_o be_v oblige_v to_o spend_v the_o great_a part_n of_o their_o time_n in_o other_o occupation_n what_o will_v become_v of_o judge_n magistrate_n tradesman_n labourer_n soldier_n woman_n child_n who_o have_v as_o yet_o a_o very_a weak_a judgement_n what_o will_v become_v of_o those_o who_o do_v not_o understand_v so_o much_o as_o any_o of_o the_o language_n into_o the_o which_o the_o bible_n be_v translate_v what_o will_v become_v of_o the_o blind_a who_o know_v not_o
fit_v to_o all_o the_o world_n be_v sufficient_a to_o salvation_n the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la may_v choose_v therefore_o whensoever_o it_o shall_v please_v he_o other_o proposition_n to_o exaggerate_v the_o pretend_a difficulty_n of_o the_o scripture_n but_o what_o choice_n soever_o he_o shall_v make_v and_o what_o side_n soever_o he_o shall_v take_v it_o be_v certain_a that_o those_o unconquerable_a difficulty_n which_o according_a to_o he_o render_v the_o way_n of_o the_o scripture_n ridiculous_a and_o impossible_a to_o the_o simple_a sort_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o vision_n and_o dream_n of_o fancy_n which_o admit_v or_o will_v create_v change_n and_o that_o he_o can_v say_v nothing_o more_o vain_a and_o chimerical_a then_o that_o which_o he_o have_v display_v in_o the_o 14_o and_o 15_o chapter_n this_o be_v what_o will_v manifest_o appear_v if_o we_o consider_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n two_o way_n for_o it_o be_v so_o either_o to_o form_v the_o faith_n to_o a_o degree_n of_o perfection_n and_o compleatness_n as_o much_o as_o a_o man_n be_v capable_a of_o it_o in_o this_o life_n or_o to_o form_v it_o to_o a_o degree_n of_o mere_a sufficiency_n for_o salvation_n in_o the_o former_a respect_n it_o be_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n not_o only_o for_o the_o thing_n which_o it_o clear_o contain_v but_o general_o for_o all_o that_o which_o it_o contain_v whether_o in_o express_a term_n or_o in_o equivalent_a whether_o by_o near_a consequence_n or_o remote_a in_o a_o word_n after_o what_o manner_n soever_o it_o be_v in_o the_o second_o it_o be_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n mere_o for_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v essential_a to_o religion_n which_o it_o clear_o contain_v and_o after_o a_o manner_n fit_v to_o the_o understanding_n of_o all_o the_o world_n to_o make_v a_o just_a and_o right_a use_n in_o the_o former_a respect_n i_o confess_v that_o we_o must_v necessary_o go_v over_o a_o great_a many_o obstacle_n and_o conquer_v a_o great_a many_o difficulty_n we_o must_v weigh_v the_o word_n exact_o examine_v the_o style_n consider_v the_o reason_n compare_v it_o with_o like_a expression_n consider_v the_o passage_n that_o seem_v contrary_a to_o it_o penetrate_v into_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o ambiguous_a and_o obscure_a place_n look_v to_o the_o connexion_n of_o the_o discourse_n to_o the_o matter_n treat_v of_o and_o to_o the_o end_n and_o design_n of_o he_o who_o speak_v to_o this_o effect_n it_o be_v necessary_a to_o know_v how_o to_o distinguish_v the_o apocryphal_a book_n from_o the_o canonical_a to_o understand_v the_o original_a tongue_n to_o judge_n of_o the_o translation_n by_o and_o even_o to_o consult_v interpreter_n all_o that_o require_v without_o doubt_n a_o great_a deal_n of_o care_n earnest_a application_n a_o great_a deal_n of_o study_n and_o it_o be_v very_o true_a that_o to_o acquit_v one_o self_n well_o of_o it_o the_o whole_a life_n of_o a_o man_n be_v not_o too_o long_o i_o shall_v even_o say_v that_o it_o be_v too_o short_a and_o that_o humane_a ability_n be_v too_o weak_a to_o exhaust_v the_o scripture_n which_o be_v a_o infinite_a depth_n of_o mystery_n and_o heavenly_a truth_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v that_o the_o author_n of_o the_o preface_n to_o the_o new_a testament_n of_o mons_fw-la have_v very_o well_o say_v that_o we_o may_v always_o lose_v ourselves_o in_o the_o abyss_n of_o learning_n and_o wisdom_n which_o we_o adore_v without_o be_v able_a to_o comprehend_v notwithstanding_o it_o be_v our_o duty_n to_o advance_v in_o that_o knowledge_n as_o far_o as_o we_o can_v and_o it_o will_v be_v but_o a_o very_a bad_a reason_n for_o dispensation_n in_o that_o case_n to_o allege_v the_o length_n and_o difficulty_n of_o it_o for_o however_o we_o can_v attain_v to_o a_o entire_a perfection_n yet_o we_o may_v notwithstanding_o make_v a_o considerable_a progress_n and_o the_o more_o a_o man_n advance_v in_o that_o study_n the_o more_o joy_n and_o comfort_n he_o have_v but_o as_o to_o the_o second_o way_n in_o which_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o rule_n of_o the_o faith_n to_o wit_n to_o form_v the_o faith_n in_o a_o degree_n of_o mere_a sufficiency_n for_o salvation_n through_o the_o essential_a thing_n which_o it_o clear_o contain_v in_o this_o regard_n i_o say_v its_o use_n be_v free_v from_o all_o those_o length_n and_o all_o those_o difficulty_n and_o accommodate_v to_o the_o capacity_n of_o the_o mean_a require_v nothing_o else_o but_o good_a sense_n and_o a_o good_a conscience_n which_o god_n give_v to_o the_o small_a of_o his_o child_n first_o there_o be_v no_o necessity_n for_o that_o that_o a_o man_n shall_v study_v the_o question_n of_o the_o apocryphal_a and_o canonical_a book_n for_o that_o discussion_n which_o be_v necessary_a when_o they_o will_v penetrate_v into_o the_o abstruse_a thing_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o may_v be_v draw_v from_o it_o by_o 〈◊〉_d consequence_n or_o by_o a_o narrow_a examination_n of_o its_o term_n and_o the_o structure_n of_o the_o discourse_n because_o those_o particular_a thing_n do_v not_o carry_v so_o sensible_a a_o character_n of_o their_o divinity_n with_o they_o as_o the_o rest_n that_o discussion_n i_o say_v which_o be_v necessary_a in_o that_o case_n be_v not_o so_o when_o they_o restrain_v themselves_o as_o the_o simple_a sort_n do_v to_o the_o essential_a thing_n which_o the_o scripture_n clear_o teach_v because_o those_o thing_n make_v themselves_o sensible_o to_o be_v own_v to_o be_v divine_a and_o by_o consequence_n canonical_a which_o be_v sufficient_a for_o the_o certainty_n of_o their_o faith_n if_o they_o remain_v in_o that_o degree_n second_o they_o have_v no_o need_n either_o to_o consult_v the_o original_a tongue_n or_o the_o different_a way_n of_o read_v because_o that_o those_o exact_a observation_n which_o be_v necessary_a when_o we_o will_v make_v use_n of_o the_o scripture_n in_o the_o first_o degree_n be_v not_o so_o when_o they_o will_v in_o the_o second_o imperfect_a translation_n sufficient_o contain_v those_o clear_a thing_n that_o make_v up_o the_o essence_n of_o religion_n and_o the_o different_a way_n of_o read_v do_v not_o make_v any_o difference_n those_o thing_n be_v neither_o in_o one_o only_a passage_n nor_o in_o one_o only_a book_n they_o be_v so_o abundant_o spread_v over_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o scripture_n that_o the_o fault_n of_o translator_n or_o variety_n of_o manuscript_n can_v hinder_v we_o from_o find_v they_o there_o and_o if_o sometime_o it_o happen_v that_o the_o boldness_n and_o unfaithfulness_n of_o a_o translator_n shall_v go_v so_o far_o as_o on_o set_a purpose_n to_o falsify_v any_o place_n of_o scripture_n as_o veron_n have_v do_v not_o long_o since_o in_o reference_n to_o a_o passage_n in_o the_o act_n which_o say_v that_o the_o apostle_n serve_v the_o lord_n and_o which_o veron_n have_v translate_v that_o they_o say_v mass_n in_o the_o lord_n or_o as_o the_o author_n of_o the_o translation_n of_o mons_fw-la have_v do_v who_o have_v insert_v into_o that_o same_o passage_n that_o the_o apostle_n sacrifice_v to_o the_o lord_n and_o another_o in_o the_o epistle_n to_o philemon_n wherein_o saint_n paul_n say_v that_o he_o trust_v to_o be_v give_v to_o the_o faithful_a through_o their_o prayer_n where_o they_o have_v translate_v it_o that_o he_o trust_v he_o shall_v be_v give_v to_o they_o through_o the_o merit_n of_o their_o prayer_n when_o that_o i_o say_v shall_v fall_v out_o there_o will_v be_v find_v enough_o person_n in_o the_o church_n who_o will_v not_o fail_v to_o advertise_v the_o people_n of_o such_o unfaithfulness_n that_o they_o may_v take_v heed_n of_o they_o last_o i_o say_v that_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a that_o the_o simple_a sort_n shall_v consult_v the_o interpreter_n of_o the_o scripture_n to_o assure_v themselves_o of_o its_o true_a meaning_n for_o the_o object_n of_o their_o faith_n be_v so_o clear_o explain_v there_o they_o be_v lay_v down_o in_o so_o many_o place_n they_o be_v so_o well_o connect_v with_o one_o another_o they_o be_v there_o in_o such_o a_o manner_n that_o provide_v so_o well_o for_o all_o that_o be_v necessary_a for_o the_o instruction_n of_o the_o mind_n for_o the_o consolation_n of_o the_o conscience_n and_o the_o sanctification_n of_o the_o soul_n that_o with_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n which_o accompany_v they_o in_o his_o elect_n they_o have_v no_o need_n of_o any_o thing_n but_o their_o mere_a view_n to_o insinuate_v and_o enter_v into_o their_o heart_n and_o to_o form_v therein_o a_o true_a faith_n to_o dissipate_v in_o a_o few_o word_n all_o that_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la have_v set_v down_o in_o his_o 14_o and_o 15_o chapter_n i_o shall_v only_o tell_v he_o that_o he_o can_v require_v but_o these_o four_o condition_n in_o the_o object_n of_o faith_n to_o render_v they_o
but_o three_o sort_n of_o person_n only_o to_o be_v in_o its_o communion_n the_o faithful_a the_o catechumeni_fw-la and_o the_o penitent_n but_o as_o for_o those_o who_o teach_v false_a doctrine_n or_o practise_v a_o false_a worship_n it_o never_o have_v any_o union_n with_o they_o not_o only_o the_o ancient_n have_v no_o communion_n with_o they_o but_o to_o show_v how_o necessary_a and_o indispensable_a they_o judge_v a_o separation_n from_o they_o to_o be_v they_o go_v so_o far_o as_o to_o refuse_v their_o communion_n with_o the_o orthodox_n themselves_o when_o either_o by_o surprise_n or_o weakness_n or_o some_o other_o interest_n they_o have_v receive_v heretic_n into_o their_o communion_n although_o as_o to_o themselves_o they_o have_v keep_v their_o faith_n in_o its_o purity_n we_o find_v in_o the_o life_n of_o gregory_n nazianzen_n that_o his_o father_n who_o be_v also_o call_v gregory_n and_o who_o be_v bishop_n of_o nazianzen_n before_o he_o have_v be_v deceive_v by_o a_o fallacious_a write_n and_o have_v give_v his_o communion_n to_o the_o arian_n all_o the_o monk_n of_o his_o diocese_n with_o the_o great_a part_n of_o his_o church_n separate_v themselves_o from_o he_o although_o they_o well_o know_v that_o he_o have_v not_o change_v his_o mind_n nor_o embrace_v heresy_n and_o even_o the_o orthodox_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n refuse_v to_o hold_v communion_n with_o pope_n felix_n as_o theodoret_n tell_v we_o although_o he_o entire_o hold_v the_o creed_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a because_o he_o hold_v communion_n with_o the_o arian_n this_o i_o mention_v not_o absolute_o to_o approve_v of_o that_o carriage_n but_o only_o to_o show_v how_o far_o their_o aversion_n go_v heretofore_o which_o they_o have_v for_o hold_v communion_n with_o heretic_n those_o who_o be_v prepossess_v against_o all_o sort_n of_o separation_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o religion_n aught_o to_o remember_v that_o the_o obligation_n that_o lie_v upon_o they_o to_o hold_v communion_n with_o those_o with_o who_o they_o be_v external_o join_v be_v not_o without_o its_o bound_n and_o measure_n we_o be_v join_v together_o under_o certain_a condition_n which_o be_v principal_o the_o profession_n of_o a_o pure_a faith_n or_o at_o least_o such_o as_o be_v free_a from_o all_o damnable_a error_n a_o worship_n free_v from_o all_o that_o which_o be_v opposite_a to_o the_o essence_n of_o piety_n in_o a_o word_n a_o public_a ministry_n under_o which_o we_o may_v work_v out_o our_o own_o salvation_n while_o these_o condition_n remain_v they_o make_v the_o communion_n subsist_v but_o when_o they_o fail_v the_o communion_n fail_v also_o and_o there_o be_v a_o just_a ground_n for_o a_o separation_n provide_v we_o observe_v these_o necessary_a caution_n they_o can_v say_v in_o this_o case_n that_o we_o separate_v ourselves_o from_o the_o church_n nor_o that_o we_o forsake_v her_o communion_n or_o that_o we_o break_v her_o unity_n for_o the_o forsake_a party_n be_v true_o such_o as_o we_o suppose_v it_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v any_o more_o look_v on_o as_o the_o church_n of_o jesus_n christ_n but_o only_o as_o a_o party_n of_o the_o worldly_a who_o be_v before_o mingle_v with_o the_o true_o faithful_a and_o who_o through_o their_o obstinacy_n in_o their_o error_n and_o false_a worship_n have_v discover_v themselves_o and_o have_v themselves_o tear_v off_o the_o vail_n which_o as_o yet_o confound_v they_o after_o a_o manner_n with_o the_o other_o the_o orthodox_n in_o the_o first_o age_n do_v not_o in_o the_o least_o break_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n when_o they_o will_v not_o hold_v communion_n with_o the_o valentinian_o the_o marcionite_n the_o montanist_n the_o manichee_n and_o the_o other_o heterodox_n of_o those_o time_n as_o i_o have_v note_v already_o no_o more_o than_o those_o who_o with_o so_o much_o constancy_n and_o resolution_n refuse_v to_o hold_v communion_n with_o the_o arrian_n we_o ought_v not_o therefore_o present_o to_o condemn_v all_o kind_n of_o separation_n and_o since_o there_o be_v such_o kind_n of_o it_o as_o be_v necessary_a just_a and_o lawful_a as_o there_o be_v such_o as_o be_v unjust_a and_o rash_a it_o will_v be_v the_o extremity_n of_o folly_n to_o judge_v of_o all_o after_o the_o same_o manner_n without_o any_o difference_n or_o distinction_n the_o roman_a church_n herself_o which_o have_v sometime_o cut_v off_o whole_a nation_n as_o france_n and_o germany_n from_o her_o communion_n which_o may_v have_v be_v see_v to_o have_v be_v so_o often_o divide_v into_o divers_a party_n whereof_o one_o have_v excommunicate_v the_o other_o will_v not_o it_o may_v be_v free_o suffer_v that_o we_o shall_v treat_v of_o matter_n with_o this_o confusion_n so_o that_o dispute_v at_o present_a about_o our_o separation_n with_o she_o we_o shall_v demand_v no_o unjust_a or_o unreasonable_a thing_n when_o we_o tell_v they_o that_o we_o ought_v to_o examine_v of_o what_o nature_n that_o separation_n be_v to_o consider_v the_o reason_n and_o wise_o to_o weigh_v the_o circumstance_n for_o if_o our_o father_n separate_v themselves_o upon_o light_a ground_n and_o without_o have_v any_o sufficient_a cause_n if_o they_o be_v even_o under_o circumstance_n which_o ought_v to_o have_v bind_v they_o to_o have_v remain_v unite_v with_o the_o other_o party_n which_o be_v not_o for_o a_o reformation_n we_o shall_v agree_v with_o all_o our_o heart_n to_o condemn_v they_o but_o if_o on_o the_o contrary_a the_o reason_n which_o they_o have_v be_v just_a sufficient_a and_o necessary_a if_o there_o be_v nothing_o in_o the_o circumstance_n of_o time_n place_n person_n that_o can_v hinder_v they_o from_o do_v that_o which_o they_o do_v it_o be_v certain_a that_o instead_o of_o condemn_v they_o we_o shall_v bless_v they_o we_o shall_v think_v ourselves_o happy_a in_o follow_v their_o footstep_n and_o as_o for_o the_o reproach_n and_o venomous_a accusation_n of_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la and_o such_o like_a we_o shall_v bear_v they_o with_o patience_n look_v on_o they_o as_o the_o effect_n of_o a_o blind_a passion_n let_v we_o therefore_o begin_v to_o make_v that_o examination_n by_o the_o cause_n of_o our_o separation_n every_o one_o know_v what_o the_o matter_n that_o divide_v we_o be_v that_o they_o be_v not_o either_o point_n of_o mere_a discipline_n such_o as_o that_o for_o which_o victor_n bishop_n of_o rome_n separate_v his_o church_n from_o those_o of_o asia_n who_o shall_v keep_v the_o feast_n of_o easter_n on_o the_o fourteen_o day_n of_o the_o moon_n nor_o mere_o question_v of_o the_o school_n which_o consist_v in_o nothing_o but_o term_n remote_a from_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o vulgar_a as_o that_o which_o they_o call_v trium_fw-la capitulorum_fw-la which_o raise_v so_o many_o trouble_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o emperor_n justinian_n and_o pope_n vigilius_n nor_o in_o mere_a personal_a interest_n such_o as_o we_o may_v see_v in_o the_o schism_n of_o anti-popes_n nor_o pure_o in_o personal_a crime_n or_o accusation_n as_o in_o the_o schism_n of_o the_o donatist_n nor_o even_o in_o a_o general_a corruption_n of_o manner_n although_o that_o be_v extreme_o great_a in_o the_o time_n of_o our_o father_n the_o article_n that_o separate_v we_o be_v point_n that_o according_a to_o we_o essential_o disturb_v the_o faith_n by_o which_o we_o be_v unite_v to_o jesus_n christ_n point_n which_o essential_o alter_v the_o worship_n that_o we_o owe_v to_o god_n which_o essential_o deprave_v the_o source_n of_o our_o justification_n and_o which_o corrupt_v both_o the_o external_a and_o internal_a mean_n of_o our_o obtain_n grace_n and_o glory_n in_o a_o word_n they_o be_v such_o point_n as_o we_o believe_v to_o be_v whole_o incompatible_a with_o salvation_n and_o which_o by_o consequence_n hinder_v we_o from_o be_v able_a to_o give_v it_o the_o title_n or_o the_o quality_n of_o a_o true_a church_n of_o jesus_n christ_n to_o a_o party_n which_o be_v obstinate_a in_o the_o profession_n and_o practice_n of_o they_o and_o which_o will_v force_v we_o to_o be_v so_o too_o i_o confess_v that_o we_o can_v say_v that_o our_o controversy_n be_v all_o of_o that_o importance_n there_o be_v some_o undoubted_o which_o be_v of_o lesser_a weight_n and_o force_n which_o it_o be_v fit_v for_o they_o to_o reform_v themselves_o in_o but_o which_o notwithstanding_o will_v not_o have_v give_v alone_o a_o just_a cause_n of_o separation_n in_o this_o rank_n i_o place_v the_o question_n of_o the_o limbus_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n that_o of_o the_o local_a descent_n of_o jesus_n christ_n into_o hell_n that_o of_o the_o distinction_n of_o priest_n and_o bishop_n to_o be_v of_o divine_a right_n that_o of_o the_o keep_n of_o lent_n and_o some_o other_o of_o that_o nature_n where_o there_o may_v have_v be_v see_v error_n and_o superstition_n enough_o to_o be_v correct_v but_o which_o will_v not_o have_v
there_o be_v reason_n for_o that_o or_o no_o it_o be_v sufficient_a that_o he_o consent_v that_o they_o shall_v not_o any_o more_o have_v have_v those_o for_o their_o pastor_n which_o be_v so_o before_o and_o that_o they_o shall_v have_v withdraw_v themselves_o from_o their_o communion_n and_o external_a worship_n we_o demand_v no_o more_o at_o present_a we_o ought_v now_o to_o pass_v on_o to_o the_o second_o proposition_n upon_o which_o the_o objection_n be_v ground_v that_o i_o have_v propound_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o this_o chapter_n and_o to_o examine_v whether_o the_o privilege_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v such_o that_o one_o ought_v not_o upon_o any_o pretence_n whatsoever_o to_o separate_v one_o self_n from_o her_o communion_n all_o the_o world_n know_v that_o this_o be_v the_o pretention_n of_o that_o church_n and_o that_o it_o be_v for_o that_o that_o she_o make_v herself_o the_o mother_n and_o the_o mistress_n of_o all_o other_o and_o that_o she_o have_v also_o make_v it_o to_o be_v define_v in_o her_o council_n of_o trent_n it_o be_v upon_o that_o account_n that_o one_o of_o her_o pope_n boniface_n the_o eight_o former_o determine_v that_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o the_o salvation_n of_o every_o creature_n to_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n but_o clear_o to_o decide_v so_o weighty_a a_o question_n there_o seem_v to_o i_o to_o be_v only_o these_o two_o way_n the_o first_o be_v to_o inquire_v whether_o that_o church_n can_v or_o can_v fall_v into_o error_n and_o cease_v to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o jesus_n christ_n for_o if_o it_o be_v true_a that_o she_o can_v never_o fall_v into_o error_n nor_o lose_v the_o quality_n of_o a_o true_a church_n we_o must_v conclude_v that_o we_o ought_v always_o to_o remain_v in_o her_o communion_n but_o if_o on_o the_o contrary_a she_o may_v err_v and_o cease_v to_o be_v a_o true_a church_n we_o must_v also_o conclude_v that_o we_o may_v and_o aught_o to_o separate_v ourselves_o when_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o just_a occasion_n there_o the_o second_o way_n be_v that_o lay_v aside_o the_o question_n whether_o she_o may_v err_v or_o not_o we_o examine_v whether_o it_o be_v true_a that_o god_n have_v make_v she_o the_o mistress_n of_o all_o other_o church_n as_o she_o pretend_v whether_o he_o have_v establish_v she_o to_o be_v the_o perpetual_a and_o inviolable_a centre_n of_o the_o christian_a unity_n with_o a_o command_n to_o all_o the_o faithful_a not_o to_o fly_v off_o from_o she_o for_o if_o it_o be_v a_o order_n that_o god_n have_v make_v we_o can_v resist_v it_o without_o destroy_v ourselves_o but_o if_o it_o be_v only_o a_o ill-grounded_a pretention_n of_o that_o church_n her_o communion_n be_v neither_o more_o necessary_a nor_o more_o inviolable_a than_o that_o of_o other_o particular_a church_n but_o as_o to_o the_o first_o of_o these_o way_n i_o have_v already_o show_v that_o it_o engage_v those_o who_o will_v follow_v it_o in_o the_o examination_n of_o the_o foundation_n and_o in_o effect_n the_o proof_n that_o they_o set_v before_o we_o to_o establish_v the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o roman_a see_v be_v neither_o so_o clear_a nor_o so_o conclude_v that_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v necessary_a to_o see_v whether_o the_o doctrine_n that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n teach_v answer_v that_o pretention_n which_o she_o make_v to_o be_v infallible_a and_o unable_a to_o fall_v away_o or_o to_o say_v better_o those_o proof_n be_v so_o weak_a and_o so_o trivial_a that_o they_o themselves_o bind_v we_o to_o have_v recourse_n to_o the_o examination_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o that_o church_n to_o judge_v of_o her_o pretention_n by_o they_o these_o two_o argument_n be_v equal_o good_a as_o to_o their_o form_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n can_v err_v in_o the_o faith_n therefore_o the_o thing_n which_o she_o teach_v we_o of_o faith_n be_v true_a and_o the_o thing_n which_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n teach_v we_o be_v not_o true_a therefore_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n may_v err_v i_o do_v not_o here_o examine_v the_o question_n which_o of_o these_o two_o way_n of_o reason_v be_v the_o more_o natural_a i_o yield_v if_o they_o will_v that_o they_o shall_v choose_v the_o first_o but_o when_o they_o shall_v have_v choose_v it_o good_a sense_n will_v also_o require_v that_o if_o the_o thing_n which_o they_o shall_v set_v before_o we_o to_o prove_v this_o proposition_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n can_v err_v in_o the_o faith_n do_v no_o way_n satisfy_v the_o mind_n if_o instead_o of_o assure_v we_o they_o plunge_v we_o into_o the_o great_a uncertainty_n we_o must_v pass_v over_o to_o the_o other_o way_n and_o by_o consequence_n we_o must_v enter_v into_o the_o examination_n of_o the_o foundation_n but_o to_o judge_v of_o what_o nature_n those_o proof_n be_v which_o they_o give_v for_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n we_o need_v but_o a_o naked_a view_n of_o they_o for_o they_o be_v not_o the_o express_a declaration_n of_o the_o will_n of_o god_n although_o it_o shall_v be_v very_o necessary_a that_o they_o shall_v have_v such_o a_o one_o for_o the_o establishment_n of_o so_o great_a and_o peculiar_a a_o privilege_n the_o knowledge_n of_o which_o be_v so_o very_o important_a to_o all_o christian_n they_o be_v not_o evident_a consequence_n draw_v from_o some_o passage_n of_o scripture_n or_o some_o action_n of_o the_o apostle_n they_o be_v neither_o clear_a and_o convince_a reason_n nor_o even_o strong_a presumption_n and_o such_o as_o have_v much_o likelihood_n they_o be_v strain_v consequence_n which_o they_o draw_v as_o they_o be_v able_a from_o two_o or_o three_o passage_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o which_o a_o man_n that_o shall_v have_v never_o hear_v they_o speak_v of_o that_o infallibility_n with_o all_o his_o circumspection_n will_v not_o have_v gather_v they_o produce_v the_o testimony_n that_o st._n paul_n give_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o his_o day_n that_o her_o faith_n be_v speak_v of_o through_o all_o the_o 1._o world_n and_o they_o consider_v not_o that_o he_o give_v the_o same_o testimony_n to_o the_o thessalonian_n in_o far_o high_a term_n than_o to_o the_o roman_n for_o he_o tell_v they_o that_o they_o be_v a_o example_n to_o the_o faithful_a and_o that_o 1._o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n sound_v from_o they_o not_o only_o in_o macedonia_n and_o achaia_n but_o in_o every_o place_n also_o although_o they_o do_v not_o conclude_v the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n of_o thessalonica_n from_o thence_o they_o do_v not_o see_v that_o he_o render_v well_o near_o the_o same_o testimony_n to_o the_o philippian_n in_o add_v a_o clause_n that_o seem_v much_o more_o express_v to_o wit_n that_o he_o be_v assure_v of_o this_o very_a thing_n that_o he_o which_o have_v begin_v 1._o a_o good_a work_n in_o they_o will_v perform_v it_o until_o the_o day_n of_o jesus_n christ_n although_o they_o can_v notwithstanding_o conclude_v infallibility_n from_o thence_o in_o the_o behalf_n of_o the_o church_n of_o philippi_n in_o effect_n these_o testimony_n only_o regard_v the_o person_n who_o at_o that_o time_n compose_v those_o church_n and_o not_o those_o who_o shall_v come_v after_o they_o and_o do_v not_o find_v any_o privilege_n on_o they_o they_o produce_v the_o passage_n of_o the_o gospel_n that_o relate_v to_o s._n peter_n as_o this_o thou_o be_v peter_n and_o upon_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n 16._o and_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o it_o and_o this_o i_o will_v give_v unto_o thou_o the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o whatsoever_o thou_o shall_v 22._o bind_v on_o earth_n shall_v be_v bind_v in_o heaven_n etc._n etc._n and_o this_o i_o have_v pray_v for_o thou_o that_o thy_o faith_n fail_v not_o when_o therefore_o thou_o be_v convert_v 21._o strengthen_v thy_o brethren_n and_o this_o feed_v my_o sheep_n but_o to_o perceive_v the_o weakness_n of_o the_o consequence_n which_o they_o draw_v from_o these_o passage_n we_o need_v but_o to_o see_v that_o which_o be_v between_o two_o thing_n of_o which_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o we_o shall_v be_v assure_v before_o we_o can_v conclude_v any_o thing_n first_o of_o all_o we_o must_v be_v assure_v that_o s._n peter_n be_v at_o rome_n that_o he_o preach_v and_o fix_v his_o see_n there_o for_o these_o action_n be_v not_o so_o evident_a as_o they_o imagine_v they_o be_v envelop_v with_o divers_a difficulty_n that_o appear_v unconquerable_a and_o accompany_v with_o many_o circumstance_n that_o have_v no_o appearance_n of_o truth_n and_o which_o make_v at_o least_o that_o whole_a history_n to_o be_v doubt_v i_o confess_v that_o the_o ancient_n do_v believe_v so_o but_o they_o have_v sometime_o ready_o admit_v fable_n for_o truth_n and_o after_o all_o these_o
be_v matter_n of_o fact_n whereof_o we_o have_v not_o any_o divine_a revelation_n about_o which_o according_a to_o the_o very_a principle_n of_o our_o adversary_n all_o the_o whole_a church_n may_v be_v deceive_v and_o which_o by_o consequence_n be_v not_o of_o faith_n nor_o can_v serve_v as_o a_o foundation_n for_o a_o article_n so_o much_o concern_v the_o faith_n as_o this_o be_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n can_v err_v and_o that_o it_o be_v always_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n to_o be_v in_o her_o communion_n second_o we_o must_v be_v assure_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o true_a and_o ordinary_a successor_n of_o s._n peter_n in_o the_o government_n of_o every_o christian_a church_n for_o why_o shall_v not_o they_o be_v his_o successor_n in_o the_o government_n of_o the_o particular_a church_n of_o rome_n as_o well_o as_o the_o bishop_n of_o antioch_n in_o the_o particular_a government_n of_o that_o of_o antioch_n when_o the_o apostle_n preach_v in_o those_o place_n where_o they_o gather_v church_n and_o settle_a pastor_n they_o do_v not_o intend_v that_o those_o pastor_n after_o they_o shall_v receive_v all_o the_o right_n of_o their_o apostleship_n nor_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v universal_a bishop_n they_o say_v that_o there_o must_v have_v be_v one_o and_o that_o that_o can_v have_v be_v in_o no_o other_o church_n but_o that_o where_o s._n peter_n die_v but_o all_o this_o be_v say_v without_o any_o ground_n the_o church_n be_v a_o kingdom_n that_o acknowledge_v none_o beside_o jesus_n christ_n for_o its_o monarch_n he_o be_v our_o only_a lord_n and_o our_o sovereign_a teacher_n and_o after_o that_o the_o apostle_n have_v form_v church_n and_o that_o the_o christian_a religion_n have_v be_v lay_v down_o in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n the_o pastor_n have_v in_o those_o divine_a book_n the_o exact_a rule_n of_o their_o preach_a and_o their_o government_n those_o who_o have_v apply_v themselves_o only_o to_o that_o have_v always_o well_o govern_v their_o flock_n without_o stand_v in_o need_n of_o that_o pretend_a universal_a episcopacy_n which_o be_v a_o chimerical_a office_n more_o proper_a to_o ruin_v religion_n than_o to_o preserve_v it_o in_o the_o three_o place_n we_o must_v be_v assure_v that_o s._n peter_n himself_o have_v receive_v in_o those_o passage_n some_o peculiar_a dignity_n that_o have_v raise_v he_o above_o the_o other_o apostle_n and_o some_o right_n which_o be_v not_o common_a to_o all_o of_o they_o but_o this_o be_v what_o they_o can_v conclude_v from_o those_o forecited_a passage_n for_o grant_v that_o jesus_n christ_n have_v build_v his_o church_n upon_o s._n peter_n have_v he_o not_o also_o build_v it_o upon_o the_o other_o apostle_n be_v it_o not_o elsewhere_o write_v that_o we_o be_v build_v upon_o the_o foundation_n of_o 2._o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n jesus_n christ_n himself_o be_v the_o chief_a cornerstone_n be_v it_o not_o write_v that_o the_o new_a jerusalem_n have_v twelve_o foundation_n 14._o wherein_o the_o name_n of_o the_o twelve_o apostle_n of_o the_o lamb_n be_v write_v if_o jesus_n christ_n have_v pray_v for_o the_o perseverance_n of_o the_o faith_n of_o s._n peter_n have_v he_o not_o make_v the_o same_o prayer_n for_o all_o the_o other_o keep_v they_o say_v he_o in_o thy_o own_o name_n that_o they_o may_v be_v one_o as_o we_o be_v 11._o if_o he_o say_v to_o he_o strengthen_v thy_o brethren_n be_v it_o not_o a_o common_a duty_n not_o only_o to_o the_o apostle_n but_o to_o all_o the_o faithful_a let_v we_o consider_v one_o another_o say_v s._n paul_n to_o provoke_v unto_o love_n and_o to_o good_a work_n if_o 24._o he_o say_v to_o he_o feed_v my_o sheep_n do_v he_o not_o say_v to_o all_o in_o common_a go_v and_o teach_v all_o nation_n if_o he_o say_v to_o he_o i_o will_v give_v unto_o thou_o 19_o the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o whatsoever_o thou_o shall_v bind_v on_o earth_n shall_v be_v bind_v in_o heaven_n have_v he_o not_o say_v to_o all_o of_o they_o i_o 29._o appcint_v unto_o you_o a_o kingdom_n as_o my_o father_n have_v appoint_v unto_o i_o whatsoever_o you_o shall_v bind_v on_o earth_n shall_v be_v bind_v in_o heaven_n and_o 18._o whatsoever_o you_o shall_v loose_v on_o earth_n shall_v be_v loose_v in_o heaven_n in_o the_o four_o place_n we_o must_v be_v assure_v that_o when_o there_o shall_v be_v in_o all_o those_o passage_n some_o peculiar_a privilege_n for_o s._n peter_n exclusive_a from_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n that_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n that_o can_v be_v transmit_v down_o to_o his_o successor_n and_o not_o some_o personal_a privilege_n that_o reside_v in_o he_o alone_o and_o must_v have_v die_v with_o he_o for_o can_v we_o not_o say_v that_o the_o twelve_o apostle_n be_v the_o twelve_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n the_o privilege_n of_o s._n peter_n be_v to_o be_v first_o in_o order_n because_o he_o be_v the_o first_o who_o labour_v in_o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o jew_n at_o the_o day_n of_o pentecost_n and_o in_o that_o of_o the_o gentile_n in_o the_o sermon_n that_o he_o make_v to_o cornelius_n may_v we_o not_o say_v that_o jesus_n christ_n have_v particular_o pray_v for_o his_o perseverance_n in_o the_o faith_n because_o that_o he_o alone_o have_v be_v winnow_v by_o the_o temptation_n that_o happen_v to_o he_o in_o the_o court_n of_o the_o high_a priest_n that_o he_o say_v to_o he_o alone_o when_o thou_o be_v convert_v strengthen_v thy_o brethren_n because_o that_o he_o alone_o have_v give_v a_o sad_a experience_n of_o humane_a weakness_n that_o he_o say_v to_o he_o thrice_o feed_v my_o sheep_n or_o my_o lamb_n because_o that_o he_o only_o have_v thrice_o deny_v his_o master_n by_o word_n full_a of_o horror_n and_o ingratitude_n our_o lord_n will_v for_o his_o consolation_n and_o re-establishment_n thrice_o pronounce_v word_n full_a of_o love_n and_o goodness_n in_o fine_a when_o those_o text_n shall_v contain_v a_o peculiar_a privilege_n that_o may_v be_v communicate_v to_o the_o successor_n of_o s._n peter_n we_o must_v be_v assure_v that_o that_o privilege_n must_v be_v the_o perpetual_a infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o a_o certainty_n of_o never_o fall_v away_o from_o the_o quality_n of_o a_o true_a church_n and_o this_o be_v that_o which_o they_o know_v not_o how_o to_o conclude_v from_o those_o passage_n for_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o first_o the_o church_n may_v have_v be_v build_v upon_o s._n peter_n and_o upon_o his_o first_o successor_n and_o remain_v firm_a and_o unshaken_a upon_o those_o foundation_n that_o be_v to_o say_v upon_o their_o doctrine_n and_o example_n although_o in_o the_o course_n of_o some_o age_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v degenerate_v and_o change_v the_o faith_n of_o their_o predecessor_n and_o the_o word_n of_o jesus_n christ_n extend_v even_o to_o the_o successor_n of_o s._n peter_n will_v not_o be_v less_o true_a when_o they_o shall_v not_o extend_v themselves_o unto_o all_o those_o who_o bear_v that_o name_n s._n paul_n have_v call_v the_o church_n of_o asia_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o which_o timothy_n his_o disciple_n be_v when_o he_o write_v his_o first_o epistle_n to_o he_o he_o have_v i_o say_v call_v they_o the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n for_o 5._o although_o those_o title_n belong_v in_o general_a to_o every_o church_n it_o be_v notwithstanding_o certain_a that_o they_o regard_v more_o direct_o and_o more_o particular_o that_o part_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n i_o will_v say_v the_o church_n of_o asia_n where_o timothy_n reside_v when_o s._n paul_n write_v to_o he_o but_o the_o word_n of_o this_o apostle_n do_v not_o fail_v to_o be_v true_a although_o in_o the_o course_n of_o many_o age_n those_o church_n have_v degenerate_v from_o their_o first_o purity_n and_o though_o the_o successor_n of_o timothy_n lose_v it_o very_o quick_o after_o and_o as_o to_o the_o prayer_n that_o jesus_n christ_n make_v to_o god_n that_o the_o faith_n of_o s._n peter_n may_v not_o fail_v when_o they_o will_v extend_v it_o down_o to_o his_o successor_n they_o can_v conclude_v a_o great_a infallibility_n for_o they_o than_o that_o of_o s._n peter_n himself_o who_o preserve_v his_o faith_n conceal_v at_o the_o bottom_n of_o his_o heart_n outward_o deny_v his_o master_n three_o time_n and_o who_o according_a to_o the_o opinion_n of_o our_o adversary_n lose_v entire_o his_o love_n and_o have_v fall_v from_o a_o state_n of_o grace_n be_v no_o more_o either_o in_o the_o communion_n of_o god_n nor_o in_o that_o of_o the_o mystical_a body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n let_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n therefore_o call_v herself_o infallible_a as_o much_o as_o she_o please_v in_o virtue_n of_o the_o prayer_n of_o jesus_n christ_n that_o infallibility_n will_v not_o
the_o month_n of_o february_n 1559._o to_o 〈◊〉_d to_o put_v a_o end_n to_o the_o difference_n of_o religion_n by_o the_o way_n 〈◊〉_d council_n the_o protestant_n have_v declare_v to_o he_o as_o they_o have_v 〈…〉_z that_o they_o can_v have_v no_o hope_n of_o any_o accommodation_n 〈…〉_z of_o a_o council_n of_o the_o pope_n that_o they_o will_v submit_v 〈…〉_z a_o free_a general_n and_o christian_a council_n not_o call_v by_o 〈…〉_z the_o emperor_n and_o christian_a king_n where_o the_o 〈…〉_z his_o place_v not_o as_o precedent_n and_o master_n but_o as_o a_o party_n and_o submit_v himself_o to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o council_n that_o for_o that_o effect_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o the_o pope_n shall_v release_v they_o of_o the_o oath_n by_o which_o he_o hold_v all_o the_o prelate_n bind_v to_o his_o see_n to_o the_o end_n that_o the_o prelate_n and_o divine_n there_o may_v give_v their_o opinion_n free_o and_o that_o all_o shall_v be_v judge_v there_o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n alone_o and_o not_o by_o the_o roman_a constitution_n and_o their_o pretend_a tradition_n that_o it_o be_v just_a that_o their_o divine_n shall_v be_v hear_v and_o that_o they_o may_v declare_v their_o opinion_n in_o the_o decision_n of_o those_o difference_n and_o by_o consequence_n all_o the_o act_n and_o all_o the_o decree_v make_v at_o trent_n remain_v as_o not_o make_v that_o they_o shall_v treat_v the_o thing_n anew_o that_o with_o these_o condition_n they_o consent_v with_o all_o their_o heart_n and_o submit_v themselves_o to_o a_o council_n but_o not_o otherwise_o so_o that_o the_o emperor_n see_v well_o that_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o court_n will_v never_o agree_v to_o those_o condition_n nor_o consent_n to_o any_o council_n at_o least_o unless_o they_o shall_v be_v master_n of_o it_o further_o confirm_v the_o treaty_n of_o passaw_n and_o settle_v the_o peace_n of_o germany_n about_o the_o matter_n of_o religion_n leave_v to_o every_o one_o the_o liberty_n of_o his_o conscience_n this_o mortal_o wound_v the_o pope_n but_o elsewhere_o he_o comfort_v himself_o with_o hear_v that_o his_o solicitation_n with_o the_o other_o prince_n to_o continue_v the_o root_n out_o of_o the_o heretic_n by_o fire_n and_o sword_n and_o every_o where_o all_o the_o rigour_n of_o punishment_n have_v a_o very_a great_a effect_n in_o france_n in_o spain_n and_o in_o the_o low-countries_n henry_n the_o second_o die_v the_o three_o of_o june_n of_o the_o same_o year_n 1559._o the_o pope_n die_v also_o quick_o after_o to_o wit_n the_o eighteen_o of_o august_n of_o the_o same_o year_n his_o last_o word_n be_v to_o recommend_v to_o the_o cardinal_n the_o holy_a office_n of_o the_o inquisition_n for_o so_o he_o call_v it_o assure_v they_o that_o it_o be_v the_o only_a pillar_n of_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n his_o memory_n be_v very_o much_o detest_v by_o all_o the_o people_n who_o immediate_o after_o his_o death_n burn_v the_o new_a prison_n of_o the_o inquisition_n which_o he_o have_v cause_v to_o be_v build_v break_v his_o statue_n and_o overthrow_v his_o coat_n of_o arm_n throughout_o all_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n pius_fw-la the_o four_o succeed_v he_o and_o it_o be_v under_o he_o that_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n be_v consummate_v he_o follow_v entire_o the_o spirit_n of_o his_o predecessor_n for_o he_o present_o move_v the_o duke_n of_o savoy_n to_o turn_v his_o arm_n against_o his_o subject_n of_o the_o valley_n of_o piedmont_n to_o reduce_v they_o by_o force_n to_o the_o obedience_n of_o his_o see_n and_o because_o that_o in_o france_n they_o have_v resolve_v to_o call_v a_o national_a council_n to_o labour_v by_o this_o mean_n to_o put_v a_o stop_n to_o the_o course_n of_o the_o reformation_n against_o which_o the_o fire_n and_o punishment_n practise_v till_o that_o time_n have_v do_v nothing_o he_o oppose_v himself_o vehement_o to_o it_o and_o send_v to_o king_n francis_n the_o second_o a_o express_a nuntio_n to_o dissuade_v he_o from_o that_o national_a council_n and_o to_o exhort_v he_o to_o follow_v the_o way_n of_o the_o punishment_n that_o he_o have_v before_o practise_v and_o that_o of_o his_o arm_n if_o it_o be_v necessary_a till_o it_o shall_v be_v provide_v for_o by_o a_o general_n council_n offer_v he_o for_o that_o purpose_n to_o assist_v he_o with_o all_o his_o power_n and_o to_o cause_v the_o king_n of_o spain_n and_o the_o prince_n of_o italy_n to_o assist_v he_o also_o the_o nuntio_n faithful_o acquit_v himself_o of_o his_o charge_n but_o the_o king_n do_v yet_o persist_v in_o the_o design_n of_o a_o national_a council_n and_o it_o be_v resolve_v in_o his_o council_n that_o they_o shall_v seek_v for_o the_o mean_n to_o call_v it_o in_o case_n the_o pope_n shall_v not_o speedy_o call_v a_o general_n one_o this_o be_v the_o resolution_n of_o a_o assembly_n hold_v at_o fountainbleau_n in_o the_o month_n of_o august_n 1560._o which_o no_o way_n please_v the_o pope_n for_o he_o see_v well_o that_o this_o national_a council_n be_v a_o very_a bad_a example_n for_o germany_n where_o till_o then_o his_o predecessor_n have_v hinder_v it_o so_o that_o see_v no_o very_a good_a mean_n to_o ward_v off_o that_o blow_n and_o apprehend_v that_o other_o nation_n will_v do_v the_o same_o thing_n he_o sudden_o take_v up_o a_o resolution_n to_o assemble_v his_o council_n at_o trent_n but_o beside_o that_o reason_n of_o national_a council_n which_o he_o apprehend_v he_o be_v further_o carry_v out_o to_o it_o by_o divers_a other_o motive_n for_o he_o see_v that_o the_o reform_a religion_n have_v spread_v itself_o abroad_o every_o where_o in_o spain_n the_o inquisition_n be_v take_v up_o only_o with_o condemn_v and_o burn_v they_o and_o they_o have_v always_o some_o new_a matter_n for_o the_o exercise_n of_o their_o cruelty_n it_o be_v the_o same_o in_o the_o low-countries_n england_n have_v whole_o throw_v off_o the_o yoke_n of_o rome_n and_o embrace_v the_o reformation_n scotland_n have_v do_v it_o as_o much_o all_o prussia_n and_o livonia_n have_v do_v the_o same_o in_o france_n the_o number_n of_o the_o protestant_n be_v very_o much_o increase_v and_o they_o have_v the_o liberty_n of_o their_o conscience_n grant_v they_o the_o duke_n of_o savoy_n can_v not_o compass_v his_o design_n with_o all_o his_o force_n in_o the_o sole_a valley_n of_o piedmont_n beside_o that_o which_o remain_v fix_v to_o the_o interest_n of_o the_o pope_n be_v very_o much_o discontent_v with_o the_o conduct_n of_o his_o court_n the_o great_a part_n of_o his_o catholic_n have_v acknowledge_v the_o necessity_n of_o a_o reformation_n and_o they_o make_v harangue_n about_o it_o in_o the_o public_a assembly_n the_o prince_n themselves_o who_o the_o most_o support_v the_o see_v of_o rome_n every_o day_n encroach_v upon_o his_o authority_n and_o give_v he_o trouble_v enough_o he_o resolve_v with_o himself_o therefore_o to_o assemble_v his_o council_n but_o at_o the_o same_o time_n also_o he_o make_v it_o his_o design_n to_o manage_v it_o so_o well_o that_o the_o success_n shall_v be_v advantageous_a for_o himself_o to_o this_o effect_n he_o publish_v his_o bull_n bear_v this_o with_o it_o that_o he_o take_v off_o the_o suspension_n that_o have_v be_v make_v and_o call_v it_o to_o trent_n on_o easter_n day_n in_o the_o year_n 1563._o he_o send_v thither_o five_o legate_n to_o preside_v in_o his_o place_n and_o after_o divers_a delay_n in_o fine_a the_o council_n be_v open_v by_o his_o order_n the_o eighteen_o of_o january_n 1562._o and_o matter_n be_v treat_v there_o afterward_o after_o the_o same_o manner_n which_o they_o have_v be_v treat_v in_o before_o under_o paul_n the_o three_o and_o under_o julius_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o the_o pope_n reign_v there_o absolute_o and_o nothing_o be_v do_v there_o but_o according_a to_o his_o will_n his_o see_n be_v exalt_v there_o more_o than_o before_o the_o disorder_n of_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n be_v rather_o confirm_v than_o correct_v there_o and_o the_o error_n and_o superstition_n and_o worship_n set_v up_o by_o man_n instead_o of_o be_v reform_v be_v on_o the_o contrary_n establish_v there_o and_o pass_v in_o the_o force_n of_o a_o perpetual_a and_o indispensable_a law_n such_o be_v the_o success_n of_o this_o assembly_n it_o will_v be_v too_o long_o here_o to_o relate_v exact_o that_o which_o pass_v there_o any_o may_v read_v with_o pleasure_n and_o with_o profit_n all_o the_o particularity_n in_o some_o of_o the_o famous_a historian_n of_o those_o time_n it_o shall_v suffice_v i_o for_o the_o present_a to_o say_v that_o after_o the_o manner_n that_o the_o pope_n take_v there_o for_o the_o govern_v that_o council_n we_o ought_v not_o to_o think_v it_o strange_a if_o they_o obtain_v their_o end_n and_o if_o they_o always_o turn_v thing_n to_o which_o side_n
the_o bad_a fish_n the_o vessel_n of_o gold_n and_o silver_n and_o those_o of_o wood_n and_o earth_n and_o in_o this_o confuse_a notion_n the_o church_n be_v the_o field_n the_o floor_n the_o net_n and_o the_o house_n that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n speak_v of_o but_o as_o this_o mixture_n which_o i_o have_v speak_v of_o may_v be_v understand_v two_o way_n either_o in_o respect_n of_o manner_n or_o in_o regard_n of_o doctrine_n we_o must_v note_v in_o the_o three_o place_n that_o this_o notion_n of_o the_o mix_a church_n according_a to_o s._n augustine_n be_v divide_v into_o two_o for_o he_o will_v have_v we_o sometime_o conceive_v of_o it_o as_o a_o body_n wherein_o the_o righteous_a be_v only_o mingle_v with_o the_o unrighteous_a that_o be_v to_o say_v with_o the_o wicked_a who_o manner_n be_v vicious_a and_o corrupt_a and_o sometime_o also_o he_o will_v have_v we_o conceive_v it_o as_o a_o body_n where_o the_o heretic_n be_v mix_v with_o the_o true_o faithful_a as_o well_o as_o the_o righteous_a with_o the_o unrighteous_a in_o the_o former_a case_n the_o mix_a church_n be_v a_o pure_a communion_n in_o respect_n of_o doctrine_n but_o corrupt_v in_o regard_n of_o manner_n and_o in_o the_o second_o it_o be_v a_o communion_n not_o only_o corrupt_v in_o regard_n of_o manner_n but_o impure_a also_o and_o corrupt_v in_o regard_n of_o its_o tenet_n these_o two_o sort_n of_o mixture_n be_v without_o doubt_n in_o the_o hypothesis_n of_o s._n augustine_n the_o first_o make_v all_o the_o ground_n of_o his_o dispute_n against_o the_o donatist_n and_o as_o for_o the_o second_o he_o often_o explain_v himself_o in_o his_o book_n and_o particular_o in_o the_o psalm_n against_o the_o donatist_n where_o donat._n he_o say_v that_o after_o jesus_n christ_n have_v purge_v his_o floor_n by_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o cross_n the_o righteous_a be_v as_o the_o new_a seed_n which_o he_o spread_v abroad_o over_o all_o the_o earth_n to_o the_o end_n they_o shall_v make_v another_o harvest_n at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n but_o that_o this_o harvest_n grow_v up_o amid_o the_o tare_n because_o there_o be_v heresy_n every_o where_o haec_fw-la messis_fw-la crescit_fw-la inter_fw-la zizania_fw-la quia_fw-la sunt_fw-la haereses_fw-la ubique_fw-la in_o that_o same_o psalm_n and_o elsewhere_o in_o divers_a place_n he_o quote_v the_o example_n of_o the_o jewish_a church_n in_o which_o he_o say_v that_o the_o saint_n the_o prophet_n and_o the_o righteous_a be_v mix_v not_o only_o with_o the_o wicked_a who_o manner_n be_v debauch_v and_o criminal_a but_o also_o with_o the_o superstitious_a and_o idolater_n that_o which_o leave_v no_o difficulty_n about_o it_o for_o idolatry_n be_v the_o great_a of_o all_o heresy_n we_o must_v note_v in_o the_o four_o place_n that_o s._n augustine_n will_v have_v we_o consider_v the_o mix_a church_n in_o two_o different_a state_n for_o as_o for_o that_o which_o respect_n man_n manner_n he_o say_v that_o sometime_o the_o wicked_a do_v not_o prevail_v over_o the_o righteous_a either_o in_o number_n or_o authority_n but_o that_o sometime_o also_o they_o prevail_v in_o such_o a_o manner_n that_o the_o good_a be_v often_o oppress_v under_o their_o multitude_n and_o this_o be_v that_o which_o he_o treat_v particular_o of_o in_o his_o three_o book_n against_o parmenianus_n and_o so_o in_o regard_n of_o heresy_n he_o mean_v that_o sometime_o they_o grow_v so_o powerful_a as_o to_o infect_v almost_o all_o the_o body_n and_o this_o be_v what_o he_o express_o show_v in_o a_o letter_n to_o vincentius_n 80._o a_o donatist_n bishop_n and_o in_o that_o which_o he_o write_v to_o hesychius_n thus_o it_o be_v that_o s._n augustine_n have_v conceive_v of_o the_o church_n and_o according_a to_o these_o different_a notion_n and_o these_o different_a state_n he_o have_v speak_v different_o of_o separation_n from_o it_o as_o for_o that_o which_o regard_v the_o true_o righteous_a and_o faithful_a there_o be_v no_o question_n but_o that_o he_o think_v that_o we_o ought_v to_o have_v not_o only_o a_o internal_a communion_n of_o charity_n with_o they_o found_v upon_o the_o unity_n that_o be_v between_o all_o the_o member_n of_o the_o mystical_a body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n who_o have_v all_o but_o one_o and_o the_o same_o faith_n one_o and_o the_o same_o piety_n and_o the_o same_o righteousness_n but_o a_o external_a communion_n also_o which_o consist_v in_o join_v with_o they_o in_o the_o same_o assembly_n in_o partake_v of_o the_o same_o sacrament_n in_o approve_v their_o faith_n piety_n good_a work_n and_o in_o one_o word_n in_o account_v they_o their_o brethren_n as_o far_o as_o it_o be_v possible_a for_o they_o to_o know_v they_o but_o this_o be_v not_o that_o which_o make_v the_o difficulty_n all_o the_o question_n be_v concern_v the_o mix_a church_n and_o all_o the_o dispute_n be_v to_o know_v how_o according_a to_o s._n augustine_n the_o corn_n and_o the_o tare_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o true_o faithful_a and_o the_o heretic_n aught_o to_o remain_v together_o in_o the_o same_o communion_n and_o in_o what_o case_n they_o may_v separate_v themselves_o we_o must_v therefore_o note_v in_o the_o five_o place_n that_o in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o that_o father_n there_o be_v a_o certain_a separation_n that_o a_o man_n can_v never_o make_v under_o any_o pretence_n whatsoever_o without_o be_v a_o schismatic_a and_o that_o there_o be_v another_o that_o he_o may_v lawful_o make_v and_o which_o it_o be_v sometime_o necessary_a that_o he_o shall_v he_o have_v distinguish_v between_o two_o external_a bond_n that_o shall_v unite_v we_o to_o one_o another_o the_o first_o be_v that_o of_o the_o external_n and_o general_n call_v to_o christianity_n the_o second_o be_v that_o of_o the_o participation_n of_o the_o same_o sacrament_n and_o the_o same_o assembly_n it_o be_v the_o first_o bond_n that_o s._n augustine_n will_v have_v to_o be_v inviolable_a not_o only_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o faithful_a between_o themselves_o but_o also_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o wicked_a and_o heretic_n and_o not_o only_o while_o we_o suffer_v they_o to_o be_v in_o the_o public_a assembly_n but_o even_o then_o when_o we_o excommunicate_v they_o and_o deprive_v they_o of_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o thus_o it_o be_v that_o he_o understand_v that_o which_o jesus_n christ_n say_v in_o his_o parable_n that_o the_o tare_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v pluck_v up_o which_o the_o enemy_n have_v 30._o sow_v among_o the_o good_a wheat_n in_o the_o same_o field_n but_o that_o he_o will_v leave_v both_o to_o grow_v together_o until_o the_o harvest_n and_o it_o be_v this_o kind_n of_o unity_n whereof_o he_o say_v that_o there_o be_v no_o just_a necessity_n of_o ever_o break_v praecidendae_fw-la unitatis_fw-la nulla_fw-la est_fw-la justa_fw-la necessitas_fw-la it_o be_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o 11._o same_o net_n that_o enclose_v both_o good_a and_o bad_a fish_n the_o unity_n of_o the_o same_o floor_n that_o contain_v both_o the_o good_a seed_n and_o the_o chaff_n the_o unity_n of_o the_o same_o field_n where_o the_o tare_n grow_v up_o with_o the_o wheat_n the_o unity_n of_o the_o same_o house_n where_o there_o be_v vessel_n of_o wood_n and_o earth_n with_o those_o of_o gold_n and_o silver_n and_o in_o a_o word_n this_o unity_n that_o we_o call_v the_o external_a and_o general_a call_n to_o christianity_n it_o be_v therefore_o first_o of_o all_o in_o this_o sense_n that_o he_o mean_v that_o there_o be_v a_o church_n from_o which_o we_o ought_v never_o to_o separate_v ourselves_o under_o any_o pretence_n whatsoever_o and_o from_o which_o all_o those_o who_o separate_v themselves_o be_v schismatic_n for_o he_o understand_v it_o of_o that_o mix_a church_n that_o field_n that_o floor_n that_o net_n that_o common_a house_n out_o of_o which_o we_o must_v never_o go_v forth_o nor_o drive_v out_o other_o howsoever_o wicked_a and_o heretical_a they_o may_v be_v there_o be_v none_o but_o god_n who_o can_v make_v this_o separation_n and_o who_o will_v in_o effect_n make_v it_o at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n and_o as_o it_o be_v thus_o that_o the_o donatist_n have_v separate_v themselves_o so_o it_o be_v chief_o upon_o this_o that_o he_o convince_v they_o of_o schism_n for_o they_o own_a none_o for_o christian_n but_o those_o of_o their_o own_o party_n they_o reject_v the_o baptism_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n they_o look_v upon_o they_o as_o pagan_n who_o have_v no_o more_o any_o shadow_n of_o christianity_n and_o when_o proselyte_n come_v over_o to_o they_o they_o make_v they_o pass_v through_o all_o the_o degree_n of_o the_o catechumeni_fw-la before_o they_o will_v receive_v they_o and_o they_o begin_v to_o make_v they_o christian_n anew_o as_o if_o they_o have_v come_v out_o of_o a_o society_n of_o absolute_a infidel_n as_o i_o have_v note_v in_o my_o four_o
article_n of_o faith_n teach_v in_o the_o creed_n and_o found_v upon_o the_o promise_n of_o jesus_n christ_n who_o ought_v always_o to_o have_v a_o holy_a christian_a society_n in_o this_o world_n that_o shall_v subsist_v until_o the_o consummation_n of_o age_n calvin_n do_v not_o say_v less_o and_o his_o word_n be_v not_o less_o express_v we_o must_v say_v he_o hold_v it_o for_o certain_a that_o from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n there_o never_o be_v a_o time_n wherein_o the_o church_n of_o god_n be_v not_o and_o there_o never_o will_v be_v till_o the_o consummation_n of_o age_n in_o which_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v upon_o this_o foundation_n refute_v servetus_n who_o maintain_v that_o the_o church_n have_v be_v banish_v from_o the_o world_n for_o a_o certain_a time_n he_o say_v bold_o that_o to_o say_v that_o god_n have_v not_o always_o preserve_v some_o church_n in_o this_o world_n will_v be_v to_o accuse_v he_o of_o a_o lie_n because_o he_o have_v promise_v that_o it_o shall_v endure_v as_o long_o as_o the_o sun_n and_o moon_n shall_v beza_n speak_v as_o the_o flemish_a confession_n which_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o reign_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v perpetual_a acknowledge_v also_o that_o he_o ought_v always_o to_o have_v subject_n upon_o who_o to_o exercise_v that_o kingly_a office_n du_n moulin_n and_o mestresat_n be_v not_o less_o ingenuous_a in_o this_o point_n etc._n etc._n thus_o it_o be_v that_o mounseur_fw-fr the_o cardinal_n of_o richelieu_n have_v justify_v we_o against_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la he_o can_v not_o in_o my_o judgement_n have_v speak_v either_o more_o clear_o or_o more_o strong_o in_o effect_n they_o can_v without_o ignorance_n or_o calumny_n ascribe_v that_o opinion_n of_o the_o entire_a extinction_n of_o the_o church_n throughout_o all_o the_o world_n to_o we_o we_o say_v indeed_o and_o we_o say_v it_o with_o a_o extreme_a grief_n that_o the_o church_n have_v be_v for_o some_o age_n in_o so_o great_a a_o obscurity_n that_o we_o can_v very_o hardly_o see_v any_o trace_n of_o the_o natural_a beauty_n of_o christianity_n shine_v forth_o there_o ignorance_n error_n superstition_n as_o most_o thick_a cloud_n have_v cover_v the_o face_n of_o religion_n and_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n have_v fall_v into_o so_o strange_a a_o disorder_n that_o we_o can_v see_v nothing_o but_o confusion_n in_o all_o part_n so_o that_o the_o church_n can_v not_o but_o appear_v under_o a_o very_a deplorable_a condition_n under_o that_o eclipse_n this_o be_v that_o which_o calvin_n mean_v by_o that_o entire_a defection_n of_o the_o world_n whereof_o he_o speak_v in_o the_o passage_n that_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la have_v allege_v and_o that_o which_o be_v also_o represent_v in_o our_o confession_n of_o faith_n by_o that_o ruin_n and_o desolation_n whereinto_o we_o say_v the_o church_n be_v fall_v but_o how_o great_a soever_o that_o ruin_n shall_v have_v be_v we_o do_v not_o believe_v as_o the_o donatist_n do_v that_o the_o church_n have_v absolute_o perish_v or_o that_o it_o be_v entire_o extinct_a through_o all_o the_o world_n we_o do_v not_o so_o much_o as_o believe_v that_o it_o be_v restrain_v to_o those_o society_n which_o the_o passion_n of_o their_o enemy_n have_v labour_v to_o cry_v down_o under_o the_o name_n of_o sect_n call_v they_o berengarian_n waldenses_n albigenses_n petro-busians_a henrician_n wicklefist_n hussites_n etc._n etc._n and_o over_o who_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la have_v insult_v so_o fierce_o after_o his_o usual_a manner_n those_o society_n be_v yet_o the_o most_o illustrious_a part_n of_o the_o church_n because_o they_o be_v the_o most_o pure_a the_o most_o enlighten_v and_o the_o most_o generous_a but_o the_o church_n do_v not_o whole_o and_o entire_o reside_v in_o they_o for_o not_o to_o speak_v of_o the_o little_a child_n that_o die_v before_o the_o age_n of_o discretion_n and_o to_o who_o we_o do_v not_o doubt_v that_o god_n be_v merciful_a we_o be_v persuade_v that_o while_n error_n and_o superstition_n may_v be_v see_v to_o reign_v in_o their_o pulpit_n in_o their_o book_n in_o their_o school_n and_o in_o the_o council_n and_o that_o a_o great_a number_n be_v fill_v with_o they_o that_o god_n preserve_v to_o himself_o amid_o the_o people_n a_o considerable_a number_n of_o the_o true_o faithful_a who_o have_v keep_v their_o faith_n and_o their_o conscience_n pure_a by_o reason_n of_o their_o simplicity_n content_v themselves_o with_o the_o principle_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n adore_v one_o only_a god_n their_o creator_n and_o father_n put_v their_o confidence_n in_o one_o only_a jesus_n christ_n dead_a and_o rise_v again_o for_o they_o and_o as_o to_o the_o rest_n live_v holy_o and_o christianly_o with_o embarass_v themselves_o either_o with_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o school_n which_o they_o do_v not_o know_v or_o the_o superstition_n wherewith_o they_o behold_v christianity_n load_v and_o which_o the_o sole_a instinct_n of_o their_o conscience_n can_v make_v they_o reject_v we_o no_o way_n doubt_v that_o even_o among_o the_o most_o enlighten_v person_n there_o have_v be_v a_o great_a number_n who_o have_v groan_v under_o so_o many_o corruption_n as_o they_o see_v the_o church_n afflict_v with_o and_o who_o in_o wait_v for_o better_a time_n have_v keep_v themselves_o without_o bear_v a_o part_n in_o they_o but_o we_o say_v nothing_o upon_o this_o subject_n but_o what_o the_o father_n and_o in_o particular_a s._n augustine_n have_v say_v concern_v the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n under_o the_o domination_n of_o the_o arian_n for_o they_o have_v say_v two_o most_o remarkable_a thing_n first_o that_o while_o the_o wicked_a and_o the_o heretic_n possess_v the_o pulpit_n while_o they_o preach_v their_o blasphemy_n there_o whilst_o they_o be_v master_n of_o the_o council_n whilst_o they_o have_v the_o multitude_n and_o the_o power_n of_o the_o age_n on_o their_o side_n while_o they_o persecute_v the_o good_a to_o the_o utmost_a and_o while_o all_o seem_v to_o stoop_v under_o their_o yoke_n god_n preserve_v in_o that_o corrupt_a ministry_n a_o considerable_a number_n of_o the_o true_o faithful_a who_o keep_v under_o the_o veil_n of_o their_o simplicity_n their_o faith_n pure_a receive_v that_o which_o they_o preach_v of_o good_a to_o they_o and_o not_o be_v infect_v with_o the_o bad_a the_o second_o thing_n that_o they_o have_v say_v be_v that_o there_o be_v those_o there_o who_o be_v more_o enlighten_v and_o more_o strong_a in_o the_o faith_n than_o the_o other_o oppose_v themselves_o to_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o arian_n and_o will_v not_o have_v any_o communion_n with_o they_o suffer_v constant_o their_o banishment_n and_o the_o most_o cruel_a punishment_n for_o so_o just_a a_o cause_n to_o justify_v this_o truth_n i_o shall_v only_o here_o set_v down_o that_o which_o s._n augustine_n have_v write_v upon_o this_o subject_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o vincentius_n but_o before_o i_o relate_v his_o word_n we_o must_v note_v that_o the_o donatist_n precise_o do_v that_o which_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la have_v do_v when_o he_o have_v abuse_v some_o hyperbolical_a expression_n that_o calvin_n make_v use_v of_o and_o the_o word_n of_o our_o confession_n of_o faith_n to_o lay_v it_o to_o our_o charge_n that_o we_o believe_v a_o entire_a extinction_n of_o the_o church_n for_o the_o donatist_n after_o the_o same_o manner_n abuse_v some_o passage_n of_o s._n hilary_n in_o which_o that_o saint_n have_v exaggerated_a the_o lamentable_a state_n of_o the_o church_n in_o his_o day_n under_o the_o domination_n of_o the_o arian_n from_o whence_o they_o conclude_v that_o s._n hilary_n have_v think_v that_o the_o church_n have_v entire_o fail_v it_o be_v therefore_o to_o refute_v this_o objection_n that_o s._n augustine_n explain_v 48._o himself_o after_o this_o manner_n the_o church_n say_v he_o be_v sometime_o obscure_v and_o cover_v as_o it_o be_v with_o cloud_n by_o the_o great_a number_n of_o 290._o scandal_n when_o the_o wicked_a take_v the_o advantage_n of_o the_o night_n to_o shoot_v against_o those_o who_o be_v true_a in_o heart_n but_o even_o then_o she_o be_v eminent_a in_o she_o most_o firm_a defender_n and_o if_o it_o be_v allow_v to_o we_o to_o make_v some_o distinction_n in_o the_o word_n that_o god_n speak_v to_o abraham_n thy_o posterity_n shall_v be_v as_o the_o star_n of_o heaven_n and_o as_o the_o sand_n that_o lie_v upon_o the_o seashore_n i_o mean_v that_o we_o must_v understand_v by_o the_o star_n some_o few_o person_n more_o firm_a and_o illustrious_a than_o the_o other_o and_o by_o the_o sand_n the_o multitude_n of_o the_o weak_a and_o carnal_a which_o in_o a_o time_n of_o a_o calm_a appear_v quiet_a and_o free_a but_o which_o be_v sometime_o cover_v with_o the_o flood_n of_o tribulation_n and_o temptation_n such_o
excommunicate_v all_o those_o who_o will_v not_o believe_v they_o as_o to_o the_o five_o s._n augustine_n do_v not_o intend_v to_o say_v that_o those_o who_o have_v separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o arian_n when_o the_o arian_n be_v the_o master_n of_o the_o ministry_n be_v schismatic_n since_o he_o himself_o call_v they_o the_o star_n of_o heaven_n the_o courageous_a and_o unshaken_a firmissimi_fw-la qui_fw-la fortiter_fw-la pro_fw-la fide_fw-la exulabant_fw-la he_o never_o mean_v to_o condemn_v their_o assembly_n which_o they_o make_v apart_o to_o have_v nothing_o common_a with_o heresy_n since_o it_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o effect_n of_o that_o heroical_a courage_n which_o he_o ascribe_v to_o they_o and_o of_o that_o ardent_a zeal_n which_o they_o have_v for_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n in_o effect_n s._n hilary_n praise_v some_o bishop_n of_o france_n germany_n and_o flanders_n of_o who_o he_o write_v that_o they_o have_v separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o those_o who_o hold_v the_o orthodox_n bishop_n in_o exile_n and_o in_o particular_a he_o extol_v those_o among_o they_o who_o have_v appeal_v to_o a_o synod_n of_o bythinia_n remain_v firm_a and_o constant_a in_o the_o faith_n and_o in_o gather_v themselves_o into_o a_o communion_n among_o themselves_o they_o separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o other_o s._n augustine_n have_v therefore_o answer_v that_o they_o be_v no_o way_n schismatic_n for_o two_o reason_n the_o first_o be_v because_o the_o cause_n for_o which_o they_o refuse_v communion_n with_o the_o arian_n and_o withdraw_v themselves_o from_o their_o ministry_n be_v just_a and_o lawful_a not_o frivolous_a and_o capricious_a as_o those_o of_o the_o donatist_n but_o weighty_a and_o fundamental_a since_o they_o dispute_v about_o the_o eternal_a divinity_n of_o jesus_n christ_n which_o the_o arian_n will_v abolish_v the_o second_o because_o that_o although_o these_o courageous_a man_n of_o s._n augustine_n have_v renounce_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o arian_n and_o withdraw_v themselves_o from_o their_o ministry_n yet_o they_o do_v not_o believe_v notwithstanding_o that_o there_o be_v absolute_o no_o more_o salvation_n to_o be_v have_v in_o the_o society_n which_o they_o have_v forsake_v for_o beside_o that_o receive_n as_o they_o do_v their_o baptism_n from_o it_o they_o can_v not_o doubt_v that_o the_o child_n who_o die_v before_o they_o be_v infect_v with_o that_o heresy_n be_v save_v they_o do_v not_o also_o condemn_v the_o simple_a and_o the_o weak_a who_o remain_v unfeigned_o in_o that_o communion_n without_o take_v part_n in_o the_o impiety_n which_o be_v teach_v there_o so_o that_o their_o separation_n do_v not_o absolute_o respect_v that_o society_n but_o only_o the_o heretic_n that_o corrupt_v it_o but_o this_o be_v that_o which_o we_o say_v concern_v the_o berengarian_o the_o waldenses_n the_o albigenses_n etc._n etc._n we_o need_v but_o only_o to_o apply_v the_o same_o answer_n to_o they_o last_o as_o to_o that_o which_o regard_v the_o six_o objection_n s._n augustine_n have_v say_v that_o there_o be_v a_o considerable_a difference_n between_o the_o time_n wherein_o the_o arian_n make_v up_o almost_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n and_o that_o wherein_o the_o true_a doctrine_n be_v reestablish_v in_o a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o church_n that_o the_o first_o be_v a_o time_n of_o oppression_n and_o the_o other_o a_o time_n of_o liberty_n that_o in_o the_o former_a time_n there_o be_v scarce_o any_o more_o a_o visible_a communion_n on_o the_o earth_n under_o which_o the_o faithful_a may_v place_v themselves_o they_o can_v remain_v under_o a_o corrupt_a ministry_n from_o which_o each_o one_o in_o particular_a have_v a_o right_a to_o separate_v the_o pure_a from_o the_o impure_a in_o wait_v till_o god_n shall_v deliver_v his_o church_n out_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o those_o bad_a pastor_n but_o in_o the_o second_o time_n where_o the_o orthodox_n and_o arian_n communion_n be_v in_o a_o visible_a opposition_n and_o such_o as_o be_v every_o where_o know_v it_o be_v not_o possible_a for_o they_o to_o remain_v under_o the_o arian_n ministry_n without_o have_v a_o arian_n heart_n or_o at_o least_o without_o fall_v into_o a_o detestable_a hypocrisy_n for_o in_o the_o opposition_n of_o these_o two_o communion_n this_o very_a thing_n that_o they_o shall_v remain_v in_o the_o arian_n be_v a_o manifest_a condemnation_n of_o the_o orthodox_n which_o they_o can_v not_o do_v without_o be_v either_o arian_n or_o hypocrite_n moreover_o in_o the_o former_a time_n those_o who_o remain_v out_o of_o necessity_n under_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o arian_n remain_v there_o in_o grief_n and_o ardent_o desire_v that_o god_n will_v procure_v they_o some_o mean_n to_o get_v out_o of_o it_o and_o to_o return_v to_o a_o orthodox_n ministry_n but_o in_o the_o latter_a god_n have_v give_v they_o the_o power_n to_o join_v themselves_o to_o a_o pure_a communion_n they_o can_v not_o remain_v in_o the_o arian_n without_o love_v and_o be_v please_v with_o it_o through_o those_o worldly_a interest_n which_o they_o can_v never_o prefer_v before_o the_o confession_n of_o a_o pure_a faith_n without_o be_v injurious_a to_o god_n without_o wound_v their_o own_o conscience_n without_o have_v a_o debauch_a and_o profane_a spirit_n and_o in_o a_o word_n without_o bind_v over_o themselves_o to_o eternal_a damnation_n behold_v here_o what_o s._n augustine_n have_v answer_v and_o it_o be_v no_o hard_a matter_n to_o judge_v that_o we_o must_v answer_v they_o thus_o when_o they_o make_v the_o like_a objection_n to_o we_o we_o must_v distinguish_v between_o two_o time_n to_o wit_n that_o which_o go_v before_o the_o reformation_n and_o that_o which_o follow_v it_o and_o by_o the_o same_o reason_n which_o i_o have_v allege_v we_o will_v show_v they_o that_o although_o it_o be_v possible_a in_o the_o former_a time_n for_o some_o to_o work_v out_o their_o own_o salvation_n under_o the_o corrupt_a ministry_n of_o the_o latin_a church_n yet_o it_o do_v not_o follow_v that_o we_o may_v do_v so_o at_o this_o day_n under_o that_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n since_o those_o two_o communion_n be_v now_o find_v to_o be_v set_v in_o opposition_n i_o shall_v not_o urge_v this_o matter_n further_o we_o may_v now_o methinks_v conclude_v from_o all_o that_o which_o i_o have_v handle_v in_o the_o forego_n chapter_n and_o in_o this_o that_o if_o there_o ever_o be_v a_o vain_a and_o ill-grounded_a objection_n that_o which_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la have_v make_v against_o we_o be_v certain_o one_o of_o that_o nature_n his_o argument_n be_v found_v upon_o nothing_o else_o but_o false_a or_o ill-understood_a proposition_n for_o it_o be_v not_o true_a that_o s._n augustine_n believe_v that_o there_o be_v any_o particular_a society_n among_o all_o those_o which_o make_v a_o profession_n of_o christianity_n from_o who_o assembly_n one_o may_v not_o in_o certain_a case_n depart_v and_o withdraw_v one_o self_n from_o its_o communion_n it_o be_v not_o true_a that_o the_o separation_n which_o be_v between_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o we_o be_v that_o which_o that_o father_n have_v absolute_o condemn_v and_o for_o which_o he_o accuse_v the_o donatist_n to_o be_v schismatic_n it_o be_v not_o true_a that_o he_o will_v accuse_v they_o of_o schism_n without_o examine_v the_o foundation_n by_o a_o mere_a passive_a separation_n as_o that_o be_v wherein_o we_o be_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n it_o be_v not_o true_a that_o he_o have_v take_v that_o visible_a extension_n throughout_o all_o nation_n for_o a_o perpetual_a mark_n of_o the_o true_a church_n it_o be_v not_o true_a that_o he_o will_v have_v that_o mark_n to_o decide_v the_o question_n of_o the_o true_a church_n when_o the_o doctrine_n of_o it_o be_v dispute_v it_o be_v not_o true_a that_o we_o hold_v that_o the_o church_n before_o the_o reformation_n have_v perish_v throughout_o all_o the_o earth_n it_o be_v not_o true_a that_o we_o reduce_v all_o to_o the_o berengarian_o waldenses_n and_o albigenses_n etc._n etc._n only_o last_o it_o be_v not_o true_a that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o s._n augustine_n upon_o this_o subject_n be_v any_o way_n contrary_a to_o we_o but_o it_o be_v true_a that_o our_o principle_n have_v all_o the_o conformity_n with_o his_o that_o any_o man_n can_v reasonable_o require_v this_o be_v in_o my_o judgement_n that_o which_o may_v be_v clear_o collect_v from_o that_o which_o i_o have_v say_v as_o the_o interest_n that_o we_o have_v in_o the_o clear_n of_o this_o matter_n do_v not_o go_v much_o far_o i_o will_v here_o put_v a_o end_n to_o this_o chapter_n and_o this_o three_o part_n concern_v our_o separation_n if_o the_o interest_n of_o truth_n and_o charity_n do_v not_o bind_v i_o to_o make_v a_o reflection_n upon_o a_o proposition_n that_o the_o author_n of_o
assembly_n most_o lawful_a for_o as_o to_o that_o which_o be_v say_v in_o the_o scripture_n i_o will_v smite_v the_o shepherd_n and_o the_o sheep_n shall_v be_v scatter_v abroad_o it_o will_v be_v manifest_o to_o abuse_v that_o passage_n if_o they_o will_v conclude_v from_o it_o a_o absolute_a necessity_n of_o the_o pastor_n for_o the_o subsistence_n of_o that_o society_n for_o that_o be_v a_o prophecy_n which_o note_n not_o that_o which_o the_o faithful_a aught_o to_o do_v when_o they_o have_v no_o pastor_n but_o that_o which_o shall_v befall_v the_o disciple_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o the_o time_n of_o his_o passion_n when_o the_o fury_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o the_o sad_a condition_n wherein_o they_o shall_v behold_v their_o divine_a master_n shall_v force_v they_o to_o be_v scatter_v which_o have_v nothing_o common_a to_o the_o question_n we_o be_v now_o treat_v of_o in_o the_o three_o place_n i_o say_v that_o to_o understand_v well_o the_o true_a use_n and_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o action_n of_o the_o ministry_n the_o church_n must_v be_v consider_v in_o two_o season_n in_o her_o first_o formation_n and_o in_o her_o subsistence_n for_o in_o her_o first_o formation_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o action_n of_o the_o ministry_n be_v necessary_a for_o the_o call_n of_o man_n to_o the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n whereof_o as_o yet_o they_o have_v no_o knowledge_n and_o by_o consequence_n they_o be_v necessary_a to_o the_o establishment_n of_o the_o christian_a communion_n or_o society_n among_o they_o which_o can_v not_o be_v without_o that_o knowledge_n to_o this_o end_n jesus_n christ_n employ_v his_o apostle_n and_o evangelist_n go_v say_v he_o and_o teach_v all_o nation_n baptise_v they_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o son_n 28._o and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o it_o be_v that_o to_o which_o saint_n paul_n have_v a_o chief_a regard_n when_o he_o say_v that_o christ_n have_v give_v some_o apostle_n 4._o and_o some_o prophet_n and_o some_o exangelist_n and_o some_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n for_o the_o gather_v together_o of_o the_o saint_n for_o the_o work_n of_o the_o ministry_n for_o the_o edify_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n those_o glorious_a herald_n by_o the_o efficacy_n of_o their_o word_n accompany_v with_o the_o power_n of_o jesus_n christ_n call_v together_o the_o church_n if_o we_o must_v so_o say_v as_o the_o holy_a assembly_n of_o god_n they_o establish_v the_o christian_a religion_n in_o the_o world_n and_o so_o unite_a man_n among_o themselves_o in_o a_o external_n society_n by_o the_o profession_n of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o faith_n of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o hope_n and_o charity_n which_o inspire_v they_o so_o that_o the_o act_n of_o their_o ministry_n be_v absolute_o necessary_a for_o that_o first_o establishment_n because_o their_o preach_v be_v the_o only_a mean_n that_o god_n will_v make_v use_n of_o to_o draw_v man_n from_o the_o pagan_a idolatry_n or_o the_o jewish_a obstinacy_n and_o to_o give_v they_o that_o faith_n without_o which_o they_o can_v never_o have_v have_v a_o christian_a society_n in_o this_o respect_n there_o be_v reason_n to_o urge_v the_o force_n of_o the_o word_n church_n which_o signify_v not_o a_o rash_a and_o tumultuary_a assembly_n make_v by_o chance_n or_o sedition_n but_o a_o assembly_n lawful_o call_v for_o it_o be_v god_n himself_o who_o call_v it_o by_o the_o voice_n of_o his_o apostle_n according_a to_o the_o prophecy_n of_o david_n the_o mighty_a lord_n the_o eternal_a god_n 50._o have_v speak_v and_o call_v to_o all_o the_o earth_n from_o the_o rise_n up_o of_o the_o son_n to_o the_o go_v down_o of_o the_o same_o he_o have_v call_v the_o heaven_n from_o on_o high_a and_o the_o earth_n to_o judge_v his_o people_n say_v gather_v you_o my_o saint_n together_o in_o this_o first_o establishment_n the_o apostle_n and_o evangelist_n do_v three_o thing_n on_o one_o hand_n they_o spread_v abroad_o the_o faith_n every_o where_o and_o by_o this_o mean_v bind_v man_n in_o a_o external_n communion_n or_o society_n on_o the_o other_o hand_n they_o set_v together_o the_o christian_a truth_n which_o be_v the_o object_n of_o faith_n in_o the_o cannon_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o in_o fine_a they_o establish_v ordinary_a pastor_n for_o the_o uphold_v and_o government_n of_o the_o church_n by_o the_o first_o of_o those_o thing_n in_o establish_v the_o faith_n in_o man_n heart_n they_o assemble_v call_v they_o together_o and_o put_v they_o into_o a_o society_n by_o the_o second_o they_o lay_v as_o i_o may_v so_o speak_v the_o fountain_n or_o the_o external_n and_o perpetual_a magazine_n of_o the_o evangelical_n doctrine_n by_o the_o three_o they_o provide_v for_o the_o ordinary_a dispensation_n of_o that_o fountain_n settle_v of_o minister_n to_o distribute_v it_o by_o their_o preach_v the_o sacrament_n and_o the_o exercise_n of_o discipline_n of_o these_o three_o thing_n there_o be_v none_o but_o the_o first_o only_o to_o which_o we_o ought_v to_o refer_v the_o convocation_n of_o the_o church_n and_o establishment_n of_o the_o christian_a society_n but_o we_o must_v say_v that_o all_o three_o serve_v for_o its_o preservation_n and_o increase_n for_o they_o be_v so_o many_o way_n and_o mean_n which_o the_o apostle_n leave_v for_o the_o preservation_n of_o the_o faith_n and_o strengthen_v of_o it_o in_o those_o who_o have_v before_o receive_v it_o and_o to_o propagate_v it_o to_o their_o child_n and_o in_o those_o who_o have_v not_o as_o yet_o receive_v it_o in_o which_o the_o preservation_n of_o a_o society_n consist_v the_o first_o contribute_v much_o for_o as_o light_n or_o torch_n light_v all_o together_o preserve_v and_o mutual_o strengthen_v their_o fire_n and_o be_v capable_a of_o light_v other_o so_o many_o faithful_a christian_n unite_a together_o confirm_v one_o another_o in_o the_o faith_n and_o piety_n and_o be_v fit_a to_o communicate_v that_o faith_n and_o piety_n to_o those_o who_o have_v not_o yet_o receive_v it_o the_o second_o do_v not_o contribute_v less_o for_o the_o faithful_a preserve_v and_o increase_v their_o light_n their_o faith_n piety_n sanctity_n by_o the_o immediate_a read_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n infidel_n themselves_o may_v be_v convert_v this_o way_n and_o those_o that_o go_v astray_o be_v bring_v back_o to_o the_o purity_n of_o the_o gospel_n the_o three_o be_v also_o of_o exceed_v great_a use_v for_o the_o pastor_n by_o their_o preach_v their_o direction_n and_o their_o write_n by_o their_o example_n by_o the_o sacrament_n they_o administer_v and_o in_o a_o word_n by_o all_o the_o action_n of_o their_o ministry_n confirm_v the_o faith_n where_o it_o be_v and_o propagate_v it_o where_o it_o be_v not_o the_o divine_a wisdom_n have_v so_o prepare_v its_o divers_a mean_n for_o the_o preservation_n of_o that_o society_n and_o the_o propagation_n of_o his_o church_n that_o if_o the_o action_n of_o the_o ministry_n do_v not_o produce_v that_o effect_n for_o which_o they_o be_v appoint_v the_o other_o mean_n shall_v and_o supply_v that_o defect_n in_o effect_v when_o the_o public_a preach_v and_o presence_n of_o the_o pastor_n fail_v the_o read_n of_o the_o scripture_n private_a exhortation_n of_o the_o simple_a christian_n the_o write_n of_o their_o pastor_n either_o dead_a or_o absent_a may_v come_v to_o succour_v and_o make_v the_o faith_n and_o charity_n and_o piety_n subsist_v and_o by_o consequence_n the_o external_n society_n of_o the_o church_n and_o its_o assembly_n how_o then_o be_v the_o action_n of_o the_o ministry_n necessary_a they_o be_v so_o first_o by_o necessity_n of_o precept_n as_o they_o speak_v i_o mean_v as_o it_o be_v a_o mean_n that_o jesus_n christ_n have_v ordain_v the_o use_v whereof_o we_o can_v neglect_v without_o sin_n those_o who_o contemn_v it_o resist_v the_o order_n that_o god_n himself_o have_v establish_v and_o make_v themselves_o unworthy_a of_o his_o grace_n and_o to_o this_o those_o passage_n in_o the_o scripture_n refer_v which_o recommend_v the_o pastor_n to_o the_o faithful_a he_o that_o hear_v you_o hear_v i_o and_o he_o that_o reject_v you_o reject_v i_o obey_v they_o that_o have_v the_o rule_n over_o you_o and_o submit_v yourselves_o for_o they_o watch_v for_o your_o soul_n 2._o the_o action_n of_o the_o ministry_n be_v necessary_a to_o the_o church_n well_o be_v though_o not_o absolute_o necessary_a to_o its_o be_v it_o be_v not_o absolute_o impossible_a for_o a_o church_n to_o subsist_v without_o have_v actual_o any_o pastor_n not_o only_o because_o sometime_o faith_n and_o piety_n may_v subsist_v without_o their_o heavenly_a food_n which_o be_v the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n as_o a_o body_n may_v subsist_v sometime_o without_o its_o nourishment_n but_o also_o because_o one_o part_n of_o that_o food_n may_v come_v to_o we_o otherwise_o then_o from_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o
but_o i_o deny_v that_o the_o consequence_n which_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la pretend_v to_o draw_v from_o they_o be_v true_a we_o shall_v see_v in_o the_o sequel_n whether_o the_o society_n of_o the_o protestant_n separate_v from_o those_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n may_v with_o any_o reason_n be_v call_v a_o new_a church_n we_o shall_v see_v also_o what_o right_o they_o have_v to_o a_o gospel-ministry_n and_o whether_o they_o can_v say_v that_o their_o ministry_n be_v new_a i_o consider_v only_o that_o principle_n which_o he_o propound_v which_o be_v that_o when_o the_o faithful_a separate_v themselves_o negative_o from_o those_o with_o who_o they_o be_v before_o unite_v they_o ought_v not_o to_o set_v up_o a_o society_n apart_o for_o he_o know_v not_o how_o to_o say_v any_o thing_n that_o be_v more_o contrary_a to_o piety_n and_o the_o spirit_n of_o christianity_n i_o hold_v then_o that_o if_o that_o negative_a separation_n of_o the_o faithful_a be_v just_o if_o it_o be_v necessary_a if_o they_o make_v it_o out_o of_o a_o good_a conscience_n not_o only_o they_o can_v but_o they_o ought_v to_o hold_v a_o christian_a society_n among_o themselves_o to_o make_v a_o visible_a body_n to_o assemble_v to_o pray_v to_o god_n together_o to_o read_v his_o word_n to_o consult_v and_o deliberate_v for_o their_o common_a interest_n even_o while_o they_o shall_v be_v separate_v from_o the_o great_a number_n of_o the_o ordinary_a pastor_n or_o even_o when_o they_o shall_v have_v no_o pastor_n among_o they_o i_o mean_v that_o that_o be_v not_o only_o a_o right_n but_o a_o duty_n a_o obligation_n and_o such_o a_o obligation_n that_o there_o be_v nothing_o can_v dispense_v with_o but_o a_o absolute_a and_o invincible_a impossibility_n the_o reason_n upon_o which_o i_o find_v this_o proposition_n be_v take_v from_o the_o very_a nature_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n piety_n and_o charity_n for_o when_o god_n have_v give_v we_o these_o virtue_n he_o have_v by_o that_o very_a thing_n indispensable_o bind_v we_o to_o keep_v and_o strengthen_v they_o and_o by_o consequence_n he_o have_v bind_v we_o to_o practice_v those_o mean_n which_o he_o himself_o have_v establish_v for_o that_o purpose_n but_o among_o those_o mean_n that_o of_o external_n communion_n with_o our_o brethren_n to_o who_o he_o have_v give_v the_o same_o grace_n be_v one_o of_o the_o most_o considerable_a as_o i_o have_v say_v before_o therefore_o saint_n paul_n tell_v the_o believe_a hebrew_n let_v we_o take_v heed_n to_o stir_v up_o one_o another_o to_o charity_n 10._o and_o good_a work_n not_o forsake_v the_o assemble_v of_o ourselves_o together_o but_o admonish_v one_o another_o and_o to_o the_o colossian_n let_v the_o word_n 3._o of_o jesus_n christ_n dwell_v rich_o in_o you_o in_o all_o wisdom_n teach_v and_o admonish_v one_o another_o in_o psalm_n and_o hymn_n and_o spiritual_a song_n and_o to_o the_o thessalonian_n we_o entreat_v that_o you_o will_v admonish_v the_o 5._o disorderly_a that_o you_o comfort_v those_o that_o be_v in_o affliction_n that_o you_o uphold_v the_o weak_a and_o to_o the_o ephesian_n speak_v you_o one_o to_o another_o in_o 5._o psalm_n and_o hymn_n and_o spiritual_a song_n sing_v and_o make_v melody_n in_o your_o heart_n to_o the_o lord_n moreover_o according_a as_o our_o brethren_n labour_v on_o their_o part_n in_o the_o preservation_n and_o confirmation_n of_o our_o faith_n piety_n hope_n and_o charity_n by_o the_o society_n that_o we_o hold_v with_o they_o so_o we_o produce_v the_o same_o effect_n in_o respect_n of_o they_o for_o we_o mutual_o edify_v one_o another_o but_o it_o be_v further_o a_o duty_n to_o which_o christianity_n engage_v we_o god_n will_v not_o that_o we_o shall_v only_o labour_v for_o our_o own_o preservation_n he_o will_v have_v we_o also_o take_v care_n of_o that_o of_o our_o neighbour_n and_o it_o will_v be_v a_o detestable_a word_n in_o the_o mouth_n of_o a_o christian_a if_o he_o shall_v say_v with_o cain_n be_o i_o my_o brother_n keeper_n we_o be_v further_o bind_v to_o propagate_v our_o faith_n and_o piety_n in_o the_o soul_n of_o our_o child_n and_o to_o labour_v even_o to_o the_o utmost_a of_o our_o power_n to_o make_v it_o spring_v up_o in_o the_o soul_n of_o infidel_n as_o one_o light_v candle_n may_v light_v another_o which_o evident_o note_v that_o the_o instinct_n of_o christianity_n be_v a_o instinct_n of_o society_n that_o carry_v we_o out_o not_o only_o to_o own_o our_o brethren_n when_o they_o be_v so_o but_o to_o gain_v more_o than_o we_o have_v before_o and_o even_o those_o which_o we_o can_v have_v in_o fine_a piety_n will_v have_v we_o give_v god_n the_o high_a honour_n and_o worship_n that_o it_o be_v possible_a for_o we_o to_o give_v he_o but_o it_o be_v certain_a 321._o that_o god_n be_v more_o honour_a in_o a_o society_n when_o all_o in_o one_o body_n offer_v up_o their_o prayer_n to_o he_o their_o vow_n and_o their_o praise_n than_o when_o each_o do_v it_o apart_o more_o heart_n unite_v together_o pay_v god_n a_o homage_n more_o worthy_a of_o his_o majesty_n they_o can_v then_o imagine_v a_o state_n more_o contrary_a to_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o true_a faith_n of_o christian_a piety_n and_o charity_n than_o that_o of_o dispersion_n nor_o by_o consequence_n any_o thing_n that_o the_o faithful_a aught_o to_o have_v more_o horror_n for_o and_o when_o the_o misery_n of_o the_o age_n shall_v cast_v they_o into_o it_o by_o a_o unavoidable_a necessity_n they_o ought_v always_o to_o preserve_v a_o spirit_n of_o society_n and_o to_o pant_v after_o the_o company_n of_o their_o brethren_n my_o soul_n say_v david_n then_o when_o he_o be_v in_o that_o condition_n thirst_v after_o god_n after_o the_o live_n and_o true_a god_n o_o when_o shall_v i_o come_v and_o appear_v before_o 42._o the_o presence_n of_o god_n my_o tear_n have_v be_v my_o meat_n day_n and_o night_n while_o they_o say_v unto_o i_o where_o be_v now_o thy_o god_n i_o remember_v the_o time_n wherein_o i_o go_v with_o the_o multitude_n and_o when_o i_o go_v sweet_o in_o company_n with_o other_o with_o the_o voice_n of_o triumph_n and_o praise_n unto_o the_o house_n of_o god_n it_o be_v so_o certain_a that_o the_o actual_a dispersion_n of_o the_o faithful_a do_v not_o break_v the_o natural_a bond_n of_o their_o society_n for_o they_o be_v always_o brethren_n child_n of_o the_o same_o family_n it_o can_v only_o suspend_v the_o act_n of_o it_o and_o when_o that_o absolute_a necessity_n which_o force_v they_o into_o dispersion_n be_v go_v they_o return_v of_o themselves_o natural_o into_o a_o actual_a society_n by_o the_o force_n of_o that_o unity_n of_o faith_n and_o religion_n that_o be_v among_o they_o without_o any_o necessity_n of_o a_o new_a convocation_n it_o will_v signify_v nothing_o to_o say_v that_o the_o duty_n which_o i_o have_v note_v respect_n the_o faithful_a only_o then_o when_o they_o be_v already_o in_o a_o actual_a society_n but_o that_o they_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o remain_v there_o nor_o to_o enter_v into_o it_o when_o they_o have_v no_o pastor_n to_o assemble_v they_o for_o i_o say_v that_o those_o duty_n arise_v not_o from_o the_o nature_n of_o that_o society_n but_o from_o that_o of_o faith_n piety_n and_o charity_n and_o by_o consequence_n they_o bind_v they_o to_o preserve_v a_o actual_a society_n wherever_o it_o be_v and_o even_o to_o make_v one_o where_o it_o be_v not_o yet_o that_o be_v to_o say_v they_o oblige_v we_o to_o unite_a all_o those_o to_o we_o in_o who_o we_o see_v the_o same_o faith_n piety_n and_o charity_n shine_v forth_o that_o we_o perceive_v in_o ourselves_o in_o a_o word_n since_o faith_n piety_n charity_n and_o the_o other_o christian_a virtue_n bind_v we_o to_o those_o duty_n they_o bind_v we_o also_o to_o a_o external_n society_n without_o which_o they_o can_v be_v perform_v whence_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o faithful_a be_v call_v in_o the_o scripture_n sheep_n not_o in_o respect_n of_o their_o ordinary_a pastor_n but_o in_o respect_n of_o their_o faith_n in_o jesus_n christ_n to_o note_n that_o it_o be_v the_o faith_n and_o not_o the_o ministry_n which_o make_v the_o society_n and_o which_o render_v by_o consequence_n their_o assembly_n lawful_a and_o necessary_a chap._n ii_o that_o the_o society_n of_o the_o protestant_n be_v not_o a_o new_a church_n one_o of_o the_o most_o ordinary_a and_o powerful_a mean_n that_o they_o make_v use_v of_o to_o render_v we_o odious_a to_o the_o people_n and_o to_o drive_v they_o from_o our_o communion_n be_v to_o represent_v we_o to_o they_o as_o innovator_n and_o full_a of_o confusion_n who_o have_v overthrow_v all_o and_o make_v a_o new_a religion_n and_o a_o new_a church_n and_o it_o be_v very_o true_a that_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o world_n
the_o form_n of_o her_o government_n we_o can_v deny_v that_o in_o that_o respect_n she_o have_v not_o undergo_v divers_a change_n i_o do_v not_o mention_v the_o introduction_n of_o the_o episcopal_a order_n for_o that_o be_v a_o question_n but_o i_o speak_v of_o those_o change_n that_o have_v befall_v she_o through_o the_o usurpation_n and_o contest_v of_o the_o first_o be_fw-mi and_o chief_o by_o the_o usurpation_n of_o that_o of_o rome_n which_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o world_n will_v own_v to_o have_v be_v very_o considerable_a her_o discipline_n and_o her_o liturgy_n have_v also_o undergo_v many_o change_n and_o they_o can_v in_o that_o regard_n ascribe_v any_o uniformity_n to_o the_o church_n either_o in_o respect_n of_o time_n or_o place_n in_o fine_a she_o have_v sometime_o behold_v the_o body_n of_o her_o ordinary_a pastor_n turn_v against_o herself_o she_o have_v see_v a_o great_a part_n of_o her_o true_a child_n scatter_v and_o disperse_v here_o and_o there_o without_o be_v able_a to_o perform_v any_o act_n of_o a_o external_n society_n and_o she_o have_v see_v some_o of_o her_o flock_n deprive_v of_o their_o pastor_n and_o force_v to_o set_v up_o some_o among_o themselves_o in_o the_o room_n of_o those_o who_o have_v abandon_v they_o for_o all_o that_o fall_v out_o in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o arrian_n the_o council_n determine_v heresy_n the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o orthodox_n who_o oppose_v themselves_o to_o their_o impiety_n be_v either_o banish_v or_o force_v to_o fly_v into_o the_o desert_n and_o according_a to_o the_o testimony_n of_o st._n epiphanius_n 28._o divers_a people_n who_o see_v that_o their_o bishop_n be_v turn_v arrian_n in_o the_o council_n of_o seleucia_n look_v on_o they_o as_o the_o miserable_a desertor_n of_o their_o ministry_n and_o set_v up_o themselves_o other_o bishop_n the_o great_a part_n of_o those_o change_n that_o fall_v out_o in_o the_o church_n come_v from_o two_o source_n the_o one_o that_o she_o be_v mix_v with_o the_o worldly_a and_o profane_a in_o the_o band_n of_o the_o same_o external_n profession_n and_o the_o other_o that_o the_o true_o faithful_a themselves_o who_o only_o be_v the_o church_n of_o jesus_n christ_n as_o true_o faithful_a as_o they_o be_v fail_v not_o to_o have_v a_o great_a many_o other_o imperfection_n their_o knowledge_n be_v obscure_a their_o righteousness_n be_v accompany_v with_o its_o fault_n their_o inclination_n be_v not_o all_o right_a and_o even_o their_o most_o just_a inclination_n do_v not_o fail_v to_o have_v some_o far_a irregularity_n these_o two_o fountain_n produce_v a_o heap_n of_o evil_n and_o disorder_n the_o worldly_a on_o their_o part_n bring_v thither_o covetousness_n ambition_n pride_n opinionativeness_n contempt_n of_o god_n his_o mystery_n and_o worship_n politic_a design_n worldly_a interest_n a_o spirit_n of_o grandeur_n luxury_n superstition_n heresy_n love_n of_o dominion_n presumption_n opinion_n of_o infallibility_n forgery_n and_o all_o other_o perversity_n of_o the_o heart_n of_o man._n the_o faithful_a they_o bring_v thither_o on_o their_o side_n their_o ignorance_n their_o negligence_n their_o fearfulness_n their_o simplicity_n and_o sometime_o their_o passion_n their_o personal_a interest_n and_o vice_n from_o all_o which_o a_o chaos_n be_v make_v up_o of_o darkness_n and_o confusion_n a_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n a_o spiritual_a babylon_n that_o perpetual_o make_v war_n against_o the_o church_n which_o reduce_v she_o sometime_o into_o very_o strange_a extremity_n and_o which_o will_v without_o doubt_n destroy_v she_o if_o her_o eternal_a head_n do_v not_o keep_v she_o up_o above_o all_o i_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n fight_v against_o that_o babylon_n on_o the_o church_n side_n and_o that_o he_o preside_v over_o that_o chaos_n to_o expel_v those_o confusion_n and_o to_o hinder_v the_o church_n perish_v but_o it_o must_v not_o be_v imagine_v under_o a_o pretence_n of_o that_o presence_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n that_o there_o never_o happen_v any_o disorder_n in_o it_o he_o indeed_o always_o preserve_v the_o essence_n of_o the_o church_n but_o he_o frequent_o permit_v her_o state_n to_o be_v alter_v this_o be_v the_o effect_n that_o that_o heap_n of_o crime_n vice_n and_o imperfection_n may_v produce_v which_o i_o have_v mention_v as_o well_o on_o the_o side_n of_o the_o true_o faithful_a as_o on_o that_o of_o the_o worldly_a they_o never_o go_v so_o far_o as_o to_o destroy_v she_o entire_o but_o they_o go_v so_o far_o sometime_o as_o to_o spoil_v she_o of_o her_o ornament_n of_o her_o external_n advantage_n and_o even_o of_o her_o very_a health_n if_o i_o may_v so_o speak_v and_o therefore_o jesus_n christ_n tell_v his_o disciple_n in_o the_o world_n you_o shall_v have_v tribulation_n 16._o but_o be_v of_o good_a cheer_n i_o have_v overcome_v the_o world_n god_n have_v always_o preserve_v and_o he_o will_v preserve_v to_o the_o end_n of_o all_o age_n a_o body_n of_o many_o person_n unite_v together_o in_o the_o communion_n of_o his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n this_o body_n can_v never_o perish_v it_o can_v never_o cease_v to_o be_v nor_o lose_v any_o thing_n that_o be_v absolute_o necessary_a to_o its_o subsistence_n but_o it_o may_v be_v deprive_v of_o its_o large_a extent_n temporal_a splendour_n worldly_a glory_n peace_n rest_v and_o visibility_n it_o may_v see_v its_o ministry_n corrupt_v in_o as_o much_o as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o hand_n of_o man_n it_o may_v see_v its_o external_n worship_n dishonour_v and_o error_n and_o superstition_n fill_v its_o pulpit_n possess_v its_o school_n and_o diffuse_v itself_o over_o its_o council_n its_o true_a member_n may_v be_v hinder_v from_o make_v external_a assembly_n and_o a_o body_n of_o a_o visible_a communion_n and_o it_o may_v be_v abandon_v by_o its_o pastor_n and_o reduce_v to_o a_o necessity_n of_o create_v other_o see_v here_o what_o the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n be_v upon_o all_o these_o illustration_n it_o will_v be_v no_o difficult_a matter_n to_o decide_v the_o question_n concern_v the_o novelty_n and_o antiquity_n of_o our_o church_n for_o if_o we_o have_v make_v a_o society_n essential_o different_a from_o that_o which_o jesus_n christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n form_v at_o the_o first_o and_o which_o have_v all_o a_o long_o subsist_v down_o from_o his_o birth_n to_o this_o present_a if_o we_o can_v just_o say_v that_o we_o be_v a_o body_n of_o many_o person_n unite_v together_o in_o the_o communion_n of_o one_o only_a true_a god_n under_o one_o only_a jesus_n christ_n our_o head_n and_o mediator_n if_o they_o can_v with_o any_o ground_n contest_v with_o we_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o true_a christian_a faith_n piety_n and_o holiness_n in_o one_o word_n if_o we_o want_v any_o thing_n that_o be_v necessary_a to_o the_o constitution_n of_o the_o church_n and_o its_o subsistence_n or_o if_o there_o be_v any_o thing_n in_o we_o that_o hinder_v that_o that_o good_a which_o we_o have_v do_v not_o produce_v its_o effect_n to_o give_v we_o the_o form_n and_o nature_n of_o a_o true_a church_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o we_o have_v make_v a_o new_a church_n and_o by_o a_o consequence_n a_o false_a and_o a_o adulterous_a church_n but_o if_o we_o can_v true_o and_o just_o glorify_v god_n for_o all_o that_o which_o make_v up_o the_o essence_n of_o a_o true_a church_n if_o our_o faith_n be_v sound_a if_o our_o piety_n be_v pure_a if_o our_o charity_n be_v sincere_a if_o we_o can_v upon_o good_a ground_n maintain_v that_o god_n preserve_v and_o uphold_v in_o the_o external_n communion_n of_o that_o body_n which_o we_o compose_v the_o true_o faithful_a and_o just_a person_n who_o only_o as_o i_o have_v say_v often_o be_v the_o church_n it_o be_v certain_a also_o that_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o unjust_a than_o that_o accusation_n of_o a_o new_a church_n which_o they_o charge_v we_o with_o there_o never_o be_v in_o the_o world_n any_o other_o church_n of_o god_n then_o that_o of_o his_o true_o just_a and_o faithful_a one_o that_o body_n only_o be_v in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n that_o alone_o be_v entrust_v with_o the_o truth_n that_o alone_o be_v animate_v by_o the_o holy_a spirit_n that_o alone_o be_v god_n inheritance_n his_o people_n his_o vine_n his_o enclose_a garden_n his_o house_n and_o mystical_a family_n as_o the_o scripture_n call_v it_o that_o alone_o in_o fine_a have_v all_o the_o right_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a society_n the_o right_a of_o external_n assembly_n that_o of_o the_o ministry_n sacrament_n government_n and_o discipline_n let_v the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la and_o his_o brethren_n stir_v themselves_o as_o much_o as_o they_o please_v let_v they_o animate_v one_o another_o let_v they_o cry_v out_o write_v prejudices_fw-la and_o invective_n never_o so_o much_o against_o we_o let_v
or_o two_o nation_n jerusalem_n and_o babylon_n which_o although_o they_o be_v mix_v together_o do_v not_o fail_v to_o be_v real_o separate_v and_o he_o will_v have_v the_o head_n of_o the_o one_o to_o be_v jesus_n christ_n but_o the_o devil_n the_o head_n of_o the_o other_o it_o be_v for_o the_o same_o reason_n that_o he_o distinguish_v between_o be_v in_o the_o church_n and_o be_v of_o the_o church_n for_o he_o will_v that_o although_o the_o wicked_a may_v be_v in_o the_o church_n yet_o that_o nevertheless_o they_o be_v not_o of_o the_o church_n that_o they_o do_v not_o belong_v to_o its_o body_n but_o that_o they_o be_v in_o its_o body_n as_o ill_a humour_n that_o oppress_a and_o disturb_v it_o and_o it_o be_v to_o the_o faithful_a alone_o exclusive_o to_o all_o other_o that_o he_o ascribe_v all_o the_o right_n of_o the_o church_n although_o the_o wicked_a may_v sometime_o have_v the_o dispense_n they_o in_o quality_n of_o minister_n and_o pastor_n for_o he_o will_v in_o that_o case_n that_o those_o may_v be_v inhabitant_n of_o babylon_n who_o distribute_v that_o good_a which_o do_v not_o belong_v to_o they_o 61._o but_o to_o the_o true_o faithful_a only_a the_o only_a inhabitant_n of_o jerusalem_n it_o be_v then_o a_o certain_a and_o manifest_a truth_n that_o the_o true_o faithful_a only_o be_v the_o church_n and_o that_o to_o they_o alone_o belong_v all_o the_o right_n of_o the_o church_n but_o if_o we_o will_v here_o add_v another_o to_o it_o which_o be_v not_o less_o certain_a since_o it_o be_v found_v upon_o the_o promise_n of_o jesus_n christ_n to_o wit_n that_o there_o always_o have_v be_v a_o church_n in_o the_o world_n it_o will_v evident_o follow_v that_o if_o our_o communion_n have_v the_o advantage_n of_o the_o true_a faith_n and_o worship_n over_o the_o roman_a communion_n in_o a_o word_n if_o we_o have_v reason_n at_o the_o foundation_n we_o be_v not_o only_o the_o true_a church_n but_o that_o we_o be_v so_o by_o a_o just_a succession_n de_fw-fr jure_fw-la and_o de_fw-la facto_fw-la to_o that_o church_n which_o precede_v we_o and_o which_o even_o precede_v we_o immediate_o before_o the_o reformation_n it_o be_v no_o more_o to_o be_v inquire_v after_o where_o it_o be_v or_o which_o it_o be_v for_o the_o promise_n of_o jesus_n christ_n assure_v we_o that_o he_o have_v one_o his_o scripture_n reason_n the_o father_n declare_v to_o we_o that_o it_o consist_v whole_o in_o the_o true_o faithful_a put_v then_o these_o true_o faithful_a where_o you_o please_v in_o france_n in_o spain_n in_o italy_n in_o the_o west_n in_o the_o east_n or_o in_o the_o indies_n if_o you_o will_v it_o be_v nothing_o to_o our_o question_n if_o we_o be_v true_o faithful_a as_o they_o we_o be_v their_o lawful_a successor_n in_o all_o the_o right_n of_o the_o christian_a society_n whether_o we_o receive_v the_o faith_n from_o their_o hand_n or_o whether_o we_o receive_v it_o elsewhere_o it_o matter_n not_o we_o do_v not_o fail_v to_o be_v their_o true_a heir_n for_o god_n as_o saint_n john_n baptist_n say_v may_v even_o of_o these_o stone_n raise_v up_o child_n unto_o abraham_n they_o be_v our_o father_n by_o the_o right_n of_o age_n but_o they_o be_v our_o brethren_n also_o by_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o same_o faith_n and_o one_o and_o the_o same_o spirit_n that_o animate_v we_o and_o make_v we_o to_o be_v one_o body_n with_o they_o when_o they_o be_v in_o the_o world_n in_o what_o condition_n soever_o they_o be_v the_o ministry_n be_v they_o the_o sacrament_n be_v they_o the_o right_a of_o assembly_n belong_v to_o they_o since_o those_o thing_n can_v only_o belong_v to_o the_o faithful_a and_o when_o god_n have_v send_v they_o to_o their_o rest_n that_o mystical_a heritage_n can_v be_v raise_v by_o none_o but_o other_o true_a believer_n for_o such_o be_v the_o law_n of_o the_o family_n of_o god_n that_o it_o be_v neither_o flesh_n nor_o blood_n nor_o transmission_n of_o pulpit_n and_o benefice_n that_o make_v a_o succession_n but_o the_o spirit_n of_o jesus_n christ_n or_o as_o tertallian_n speak_v the_o consanguinity_n of_o the_o faith_n and_o doctrine_n 32._o if_o then_o we_o have_v that_o spiritual_a consanguinity_n we_o be_v their_o true_a successor_n and_o we_o make_v but_o one_o only_a body_n one_o church_n with_o they_o but_o they_o will_v say_v how_o can_v it_o be_v that_o you_o shall_v make_v but_o one_o only_a body_n with_o the_o church_n which_o be_v before_o the_o reformation_n since_o that_o church_n live_v then_o in_o communion_n with_o those_o from_o who_o you_o be_v now_o separate_v she_o have_v a_o exterual_a worship_n quite_o differ_v from_o you_o she_o be_v under_o quite_o another_o ministry_n than_o you_o for_o she_o be_v under_o a_o ministry_n that_o profess_v to_o invocate_v saint_n religious_o to_o worship_v their_o image_n and_o their_o relic_n to_o sacrifice_v real_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n to_o believe_v transubstantiation_n the_o real_a presence_n and_o all_o the_o other_o article_n that_o you_o at_o this_o day_n profess_v to_o reject_v how_o can_v you_o be_v the_o same_o church_n how_o can_v your_o minister_n be_v successor_n to_o those_o who_o be_v at_o that_o time_n bishop_n arch-bishop_n cardinal_n patriarch_n and_o pope_n your_o liturgy_n be_v different_a your_o discipline_n be_v not_o less_o you_o have_v neither_o feast_n nor_o procession_n nor_o any_o of_o the_o solemnity_n practise_v open_o among_o we_o how_o can_v it_o be_v otherwise_o then_o that_o you_o shall_v be_v a_o new_a church_n i_o answer_v first_o that_o if_o that_o reason_v be_v just_o it_o will_v conclude_v that_o the_o church_n before_o the_o reformation_n be_v not_o the_o same_o church_n with_o that_o which_o the_o apostle_n establish_v at_o first_o for_o according_a to_o the_o idea_n that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n give_v we_o of_o the_o apostolic_a church_n we_o can_v see_v there_o any_o thing_n like_o to_o that_o which_o be_v do_v immediate_o before_o the_o reformation_n we_o find_v there_o neither_o the_o same_o tenet_n nor_o the_o same_o worship_n nor_o the_o same_o solemnity_n nor_o the_o same_o form_n of_o ministry_n nor_o the_o same_o government_n nor_o the_o same_o discipline_n nor_o the_o same_o sacrament_n nor_o the_o same_o liturgy_n nor_o in_o fine_a any_o thing_n of_o that_o which_o our_o father_n reform_v let_v they_o tell_v we_o then_o after_o what_o manner_n they_o mean_v that_o the_o church_n before_o the_o reformation_n be_v not_o the_o one_o and_o the_o same_o church_n with_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n for_o if_o they_o be_v in_o effect_n two_o different_a church_n and_o that_o we_o be_v oblige_v to_o choose_v one_o to_o have_v communion_n with_o or_o a_o identity_n with_o as_o they_o speak_v we_o shall_v not_o hesitate_n upon_o the_o choice_n we_o shall_v have_v a_o thousand_o time_n more_o consolation_n and_o assurance_n to_o find_v ourselves_o conform_v to_o the_o apostolic_a church_n then_o to_o be_v in_o nothing_o different_a from_o that_o which_o immediate_o precede_v the_o reformation_n since_o the_o apostolic_a ought_v to_o be_v look_v on_o as_o the_o mother_n church_n the_o original_a exemplar_n or_o pattern_n to_o all_o the_o age_n follow_v from_o which_o it_o be_v not_o allowable_a to_o recede_v let_v the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la then_o if_o he_o please_v do_v one_o of_o these_o two_o thing_n either_o show_v we_o in_o the_o church_n of_o the_o apostle_n all_o those_o thing_n which_o we_o have_v not_o in_o conformity_n with_o the_o church_n that_o be_v immediate_o before_o the_o reformation_n and_o upon_o which_o ground_n he_o will_v have_v we_o be_v a_o new_a church_n let_v he_o show_v we_o that_o there_o be_v transubstantiation_n there_o the_o real_a presence_n the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n the_o adoration_n of_o the_o eucharist_n the_o worship_v of_o image_n the_o invocation_n of_o saint_n the_o worship_v of_o relic_n the_o order_n and_o vow_n of_o their_o religious_a the_o caelibacy_n of_o churchman_n worship_n in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n their_o feast_n procession_n and_o in_o general_a all_o that_o that_o according_a to_o he_o make_v we_o a_o new_a church_n differ_v from_o that_o which_o precede_v the_o reformation_n or_o if_o he_o will_v not_o engage_v himself_o so_o far_o let_v he_o at_o least_o tell_v we_o after_o what_o manner_n he_o understand_v that_o the_o church_n before_o the_o reformation_n be_v not_o itself_o a_o new_a church_n differ_v from_o that_o which_o the_o apostle_n establish_v he_o can_v tell_v how_o to_o do_v the_o first_o of_o those_o thing_n because_o it_o be_v absolute_o impossible_a and_o he_o can_v never_o do_v the_o second_o because_o his_o principle_n whole_o oppose_v it_o and_o in_o effect_v it_o be_v true_a that_o those_o who_o believe_v and_o practise_v all_o that_o which_o i_o have_v
any_o relation_n to_o that_o religion_n be_v not_o of_o the_o essence_n of_o the_o church_n but_o its_o state_n the_o mixture_n of_o error_n and_o abuse_n with_o the_o sound_a doctrine_n the_o corruption_n of_o worship_n the_o vice_n of_o the_o ministry_n the_o superstitious_a ceremony_n the_o form_n of_o government_n the_o religious_a as_o they_o speak_v that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o divers_a order_n of_o monk_n the_o different_a degree_n of_o the_o hierarchy_n feast_n procession_n fast_n and_o in_o a_o word_n all_o that_o which_o have_v be_v note_v in_o the_o objection_n and_o in_o which_o that_o church_n be_v then_o different_a from_o the_o protestant_n all_o that_o i_o say_v belong_v to_o the_o condition_n of_o the_o church_n then_o and_o can_v by_o consequence_n be_v change_v without_o make_v either_o the_o one_o or_o the_o other_o a_o new_a church_n that_o the_o faithful_a find_v themselves_o insensible_o overpowr_v by_o almost_o a_o infinite_a number_n of_o the_o worldly_a who_o mingle_a themselves_o with_o they_o as_o tare_n with_o the_o wheat_n that_o those_o worldly_a make_v themselves_o master_n of_o the_o pulpit_n the_o ministry_n the_o council_n that_o they_o bring_v in_o error_n superstition_n and_o abuse_n that_o they_o change_v the_o form_n of_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n and_o that_o of_o the_o public_a worship_n all_o that_o do_v not_o respect_v the_o essence_n of_o the_o church_n which_o consist_v only_o in_o the_o true_a faith_n but_o its_o condition_n so_o that_o when_o our_o father_n reform_v those_o thing_n we_o may_v well_o say_v they_o change_v the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n in_o their_o day_n but_o not_o that_o they_o change_v the_o church_n nor_o that_o they_o make_v a_o new_a one_o and_o their_o church_n will_v not_o cease_v notwithstanding_o that_o change_n to_o be_v join_v by_o a_o true_a succession_n of_o time_n and_o person_n to_o that_o which_o be_v before_o a_o town_n full_a of_o stranger_n who_o make_v themselves_o more_o powerful_a there_o leave_v desolate_a by_o those_o popular_a disease_n which_o those_o stranger_n bring_v thither_o and_o fill_v with_o those_o disorder_n which_o they_o cause_v do_v not_o cease_v to_o be_v the_o same_o town_n by_o a_o true_a succession_n of_o time_n and_o person_n when_o those_o stranger_n shall_v quit_v it_o and_o its_o good_a citizen_n be_v establish_v in_o their_o just_a and_o lawful_a state_n as_o heretofore_o rome_n sack_v by_o the_o goth_n do_v not_o cease_v to_o be_v the_o same_o rome_n when_o it_o be_v free_v from_o they_o and_o a_o river_n swell_v with_o the_o water_n of_o the_o neighbour_a brook_n that_o make_v it_o overflow_v the_o field_n and_o break_v over_o its_o bank_n be_v yet_o the_o same_o river_n when_o those_o water_n go_v back_o and_o retire_v into_o their_o ordinary_a channel_n chap._n iii_o that_o the_o ministry_n exercise_v in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o protestant_n be_v lawful_a and_o that_o the_o call_v of_o their_o minister_n be_v so_o also_o we_o come_v now_o to_o justify_v the_o right_n that_o we_o have_v to_o the_o gospel-ministry_n and_o to_o defend_v our_o call_n not_o only_o against_o the_o ordinary_a objection_n of_o those_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o also_o against_o the_o accusation_n of_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la in_o particular_a for_o that_o author_n who_o think_v it_o meritorious_a to_o go_v beyond_o other_o especial_o in_o his_o passion_n be_v not_o content_v mere_o to_o say_v that_o we_o be_v pastor_n without_o mission_n and_o minister_n without_o a_o call_v but_o by_o a_o heat_n of_o zeal_n obstinate_o adhere_v to_o he_o he_o call_v we_o thief_n and_o robber_n tyrant_n rebel_n false_a pastor_n and_o sacrilegious_a usurper_n of_o the_o authority_n of_o jesus_n christ_n nevertheless_o as_o those_o injury_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o effect_n of_o his_o ill_a humour_n it_o will_v be_v no_o hard_a matter_n to_o show_v he_o that_o all_o the_o condition_n that_o we_o can_v rational_o require_v to_o make_v a_o ministry_n just_a and_o lawful_a be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o that_o of_o the_o protestant_a minister_n and_o that_o thanks_o be_v to_o god_n they_o can_v reproach_v they_o with_o nothing_o on_o that_o occasion_n this_o be_v that_o which_o i_o design_v to_o show_v in_o this_o chapter_n and_o to_o this_o effect_n i_o shall_v first_o propound_v some_o observation_n which_o i_o judge_v necessary_a for_o the_o unfolding_n of_o that_o question_n i_o say_v then_o in_o the_o first_o place_n that_o we_o do_v not_o here_o dispute_v about_o the_o call_v that_o our_o father_n have_v for_o a_o reformation_n but_o only_o of_o that_o which_o they_o have_v and_o which_o we_o have_v after_o they_o for_o the_o ordinary_a ministry_n of_o the_o gospel_n for_o we_o ought_v to_o take_v great_a heed_n lest_o we_o confound_v as_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la have_v do_v those_o two_o sort_n of_o call_n that_o we_o acknowledge_v our_o father_n to_o have_v have_v and_o which_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n dispute_v with_o they_o for_o that_o which_o they_o have_v to_o reform_v themselves_o that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o reject_v that_o which_o we_o call_v their_o error_n and_o superstition_n that_o be_v bring_v into_o the_o latin_a church_n and_o that_o which_o regard_v the_o ordinary_a preach_v of_o the_o word_n of_o the_o gospel_n the_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o the_o exercise_n of_o discipline_n these_o two_o call_n be_v whole_o different_a the_o one_o which_o be_v that_o of_o the_o reformation_n be_v of_o right_o common_a to_o all_o christian_n there_o be_v no_o one_o who_o be_v not_o lawful_o call_v by_o his_o baptism_n to_o destroy_v error_n contrary_a to_o the_o nature_n or_o purity_n of_o the_o true_a faith_n and_o to_o exhort_v his_o neighbour_n to_o do_v the_o same_o thing_n for_o the_o interest_n of_o his_o own_o salvation_n and_o that_o of_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n as_o i_o have_v already_o show_v in_o my_o second_o part_n from_o whence_o it_o follow_v that_o in_o that_o respect_n they_o can_v have_v nothing_o to_o say_v against_o our_o father_n and_o much_o less_o 4._o against_o those_o who_o they_o call_v the_o first_o reformer_n since_o be_v as_o they_o be_v in_o public_a office_n they_o have_v more_o of_o a_o call_v for_o that_o than_o be_v necessary_a the_o other_o which_o be_v that_o which_o respect_v the_o ordinary_a preach_v of_o the_o word_n of_o the_o gospel_n the_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o the_o exercise_n of_o discipline_n be_v not_o common_a to_o every_o private_a man_n on_o the_o contrary_a no_o one_o ought_v on_o his_o own_o head_n to_o thrust_v himself_o in_o without_o be_v otherwise_o lawful_o call_v the_o reason_n of_o this_o difference_n be_v that_o the_o reformation_n consist_v in_o the_o mere_a act_n of_o faith_n and_o charity_n which_o be_v those_o particular_a act_n that_o none_o can_v dispense_v with_o because_o no_o one_o can_v say_v that_o it_o do_v not_o belong_v to_o he_o to_o be_v of_o the_o true_a faith_n or_o to_o be_v charitable_a but_o the_o preach_a of_o the_o word_n the_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o the_o exercise_n of_o discipline_n be_v those_o act_n of_o authority_n that_o no_o one_o can_v do_v in_o his_o own_o name_n but_o in_o the_o name_n of_o another_o that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o the_o name_n of_o god_n or_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n so_o that_o he_o ought_v to_o be_v lawful_o authorize_v to_o do_v they_o it_o be_v then_o this_o latter_a call_n that_o we_o be_v concern_v about_o in_o this_o question_n 2._o in_o the_o second_o place_n we_o must_v note_v that_o we_o do_v not_o here_o any_o more_o dispute_n about_o that_o extraordinary_a ministry_n which_o jesus_n christ_n himself_o immediate_o communicate_v to_o his_o apostle_n to_o give_v man_n the_o first_o call_v to_o the_o christian_a faith_n and_o to_o assemble_v they_o in_o a_o society_n for_o our_o father_n do_v not_o make_v any_o new_a convocation_n nor_o any_o new_a society_n nor_o any_o new_a church_n as_o i_o have_v show_v in_o the_o two_o foregoing_a chapter_n they_o do_v not_o preach_v a_o new_a testament_n or_o a_o new_a covenant_n differ_v from_o that_o which_o the_o apostle_n preach_v they_o be_v not_o qualify_v either_o as_o new_a apostle_n or_o new_a prophet_n or_o new_a evangelist_n they_o do_v not_o bring_v with_o they_o any_o new_a revelation_n to_o the_o world_n but_o they_o purge_v and_o reform_v the_o corrupt_a state_n of_o religion_n and_o the_o church_n by_o the_o same_o scripture_n that_o the_o apostle_n leave_v we_o they_o labour_v to_o reduce_v thing_n into_o their_o ancient_n and_o natural_a state_n and_o for_o the_o rest_n they_o preach_v the_o same_o gopel_n and_o administer_v the_o same_o sacrament_n that_o the_o apostle_n leave_v and_o
from_o that_o humane_a intervention_n that_o the_o bad_a state_n of_o the_o ministry_n proceed_v if_o god_n will_v always_o send_v they_o immediate_o as_o he_o do_v his_o apostle_n and_o evangelist_n there_o will_v be_v some_o ground_n to_o believe_v that_o it_o will_v never_o be_v remote_a from_o its_o first_o institution_n but_o since_o they_o be_v man_n that_o send_v they_o no_o one_o can_v deny_v that_o it_o can_v be_v corrupt_v through_o that_o channel_n for_o god_n have_v never_o promise_v any_o thing_n to_o the_o contrary_a in_o that_o matter_n god_n have_v not_o promise_v that_o he_o will_v accompany_v those_o election_n and_o humane_a call_n with_o a_o infallible_a spirit_n that_o shall_v give_v they_o all_o a_o happy_a success_n and_o beside_o that_o the_o experience_n of_o all_o the_o age_n past_a contradict_v it_o jesus_n christ_n himself_o seem_v purposely_o to_o have_v forbid_v such_o a_o rash_a imagination_n for_o although_o he_o know_v the_o heart_n and_o the_o thought_n of_o it_o yet_o nevertheless_o he_o will_v have_v a_o judas_n add_v to_o the_o number_n of_o his_o first_o disciple_n and_o he_o permit_v that_o a_o nicholas_n who_o be_v afterward_o the_o head_n of_o the_o sect_n of_o the_o nicolaitan_n shall_v have_v a_o part_n in_o the_o election_n that_o the_o church_n make_v of_o her_o first_o deacon_n to_o give_v we_o to_o understand_v that_o it_o be_v not_o his_o intention_n actual_o to_o hinder_v the_o ministry_n from_o ever_o fall_v into_o very_o bad_a hand_n 6._o we_o must_v note_v in_o the_o six_o place_n that_o although_o the_o church_n and_o the_o ordinary_a ministry_n which_o we_o speak_v of_o be_v two_o thing_n natural_o join_v together_o yet_o it_o be_v not_o the_o church_n that_o depend_v s_o upon_o the_o ministry_n but_o it_o be_v the_o ministry_n on_o the_o contrary_a that_o depend_v upon_o the_o church_n for_o the_o ordinary_a pastor_n be_v not_o establish_v but_o when_o the_o church_n be_v first_o form_v and_o when_o care_n be_v take_v for_o its_o preservation_n and_o propagation_n so_o that_o natural_o it_o precede_v pastor_n the_o church_n be_v produce_v at_o first_o by_o the_o extraordinary_a ministry_n of_o the_o apostle_n the_o first_o thing_n which_o they_o propound_v be_v not_o to_o make_v ordinary_a pastor_n but_o true_a beleiver_n they_o call_v man_n to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o jesus_n christ_n they_o assemble_v they_o together_o they_o unite_v they_o in_o a_o society_n before_o they_o provide_v for_o the_o uphold_v of_o that_o society_n in_o set_v up_o a_o ordinary_a ministry_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o it_o they_o first_o take_v care_n for_o the_o birth_n of_o the_o new_a creature_n and_o after_o they_o procure_v it_o breast_n to_o nourish_v it_o therefore_o it_o be_v that_o the_o ordinary_a minister_n be_v call_v pastor_n in_o reference_n to_o shepherd_n who_o feed_v and_o lead_v their_o flock_n they_o be_v call_v presbyter_n or_o elder_n with_o reference_n to_o the_o senator_n among_o the_o jew_n they_o be_v call_v bishop_n that_o be_v overseer_n or_o superintendants_a by_o a_o allusion_n to_o the_o superintendants_a of_o victual_n among_o the_o greek_n who_o be_v call_v bishop_n also_o but_o the_o shepherd_n suppose_v their_o flock_n the_o choose_a senator_n among_o the_o people_n suppose_v the_o people_n the_o superintendants_a or_o overseer_n suppose_v those_o over_o who_o they_o give_v a_o right_a of_o superintendance_a and_o inspection_n the_o ordinary_a minister_n therefore_o suppose_v the_o church_n and_o not_o the_o church_n the_o minister_n she_o be_v not_o because_o they_o be_v but_o they_o on_o the_o contrary_a because_o she_o be_v she_o do_v not_o own_o her_o be_v to_o they_o but_o they_o they_o to_o she_o this_o truth_n will_v yet_o appear_v more_o clear_o if_o we_o set_v before_o their_o eye_n what_o i_o have_v already_o say_v in_o the_o first_o chapter_n of_o this_o four_o part_n that_o the_o ordinary_a ministry_n be_v not_o absolute_o necessary_a to_o the_o be_v of_o a_o church_n but_o that_o it_o be_v only_o necessary_a to_o its_o well_o be_v and_o to_o hinder_v it_o from_o fall_v into_o ruin_n for_o when_o the_o faithful_a shall_v have_v no_o pastor_n they_o will_v yet_o be_v join_v together_o in_o a_o society_n since_o it_o be_v grace_n and_o faith_n that_o unite_v s_o they_o and_o not_o the_o ministry_n and_o as_o in_o the_o civil_a society_n it_o be_v the_o nature_n and_o not_o the_o magistrate_n that_o unite_v man_n and_o that_o after_o man_n be_v unite_v in_o a_o society_n the_o magistrate_n be_v make_v by_o reason_n of_o order_n and_o by_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o preservation_n of_o that_o society_n so_o that_o it_o be_v the_o society_n that_o make_v the_o magistrate_n and_o not_o the_o magistrate_n the_o society_n so_o here_o it_o be_v the_o same_o the_o faith_n and_o grace_n assemble_v man_n into_o a_o religous_a society_n they_o be_v those_o thing_n that_o make_v the_o church_n and_o afterward_o the_o ministry_n arise_v by_o reason_n of_o order_n and_o to_o help_v the_o preservation_n of_o the_o church_n and_o so_o natural_o it_o be_v the_o church_n that_o produce_v the_o ordinary_a ministry_n and_o not_o the_o ordinary_a ministry_n that_o produce_v the_o church_n the_o church_n be_v the_o fruit_n of_o the_o extraordinary_a ministry_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o evangelist_n that_o ministry_n produce_v it_o at_o first_o and_o not_o only_o produce_v it_o but_o it_o have_v always_o since_o make_v use_n of_o that_o mean_n or_o that_o source_n for_o its_o subsistence_n and_o we_o may_v true_o say_v that_o it_o yet_o produce_v it_o and_o that_o it_o will_v produce_v it_o unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n for_o it_o be_v the_o faith_n that_o make_v and_o always_o will_v make_v the_o church_n and_o it_o be_v the_o ministry_n of_o the_o apostle_n which_o make_v and_o will_v always_o make_v the_o faith_n it_o be_v their_o voice_n that_o call_v christian_n together_o at_o this_o day_n it_o be_v their_o word_n that_o assemble_v they_o and_o their_o teach_v that_o unite_v they_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v singular_a that_o be_v to_o say_v only_o tie_v to_o their_o person_n without_o succession_n without_o communication_n without_o propagation_n but_o it_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v think_v that_o it_o be_v also_o as_o transitory_a a_o ministry_n as_o that_o of_o other_o man_n for_o it_o be_v perpetual_a in_o the_o church_n death_n have_v not_o shut_v their_o mouth_n as_o it_o have_v the_o other_o they_o speak_v they_o instruct_v they_o incessant_o spread_v abroad_o the_o faith_n piety_n and_o holiness_n among_o the_o soul_n of_o christian_n and_o there_o be_v not_o another_o fountain_n from_o whence_o those_o virtue_n can_v descend_v but_o from_o they_o if_o any_o demand_n of_o we_o what_o be_v that_o perpetual_a voice_n that_o we_o ascribe_v to_o they_o we_o answer_v that_o it_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n where_o they_o have_v set_v down_o all_o the_o efficacy_n of_o their_o ministry_n and_o the_o whole_a virtue_n of_o that_o word_n which_o give_v a_o be_v to_o the_o church_n there_o it_o be_v that_o their_o true_a chair_n and_o their_o apostolic_a see_v be_v there_o be_v the_o centre_n of_o the_o christian_a unity_n there_o it_o be_v that_o they_o incessant_o call_v man_n and_o join_v they_o into_o a_o society_n every_o other_o voice_n beside_o they_o be_v false_a and_o supposititious_a it_o be_v from_o they_o alone_o that_o the_o church_n proceed_v and_o because_o to_o assemble_v with_o those_o be_v to_o assemble_v with_o jesus_n christ_n we_o may_v very_o well_o say_v that_o not_o to_o assemble_v with_o they_o be_v to_o disperse_v instead_o of_o assemble_v but_o as_o to_o the_o ordinary_a ministry_n of_o the_o pastor_n we_o can_v say_v the_o same_o thing_n it_o be_v not_o their_o voice_n as_o it_o be_v distinct_a from_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n that_o beget_v the_o faith_n that_o assemble_v christian_n into_o a_o society_n or_o that_o produce_v the_o church_n they_o be_v no_o more_o but_o mere_a dispenser_n of_o the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n or_o if_o you_o will_v external_n instrument_n to_o make_v we_o the_o better_a understand_v their_o voice_n they_o be_v not_o not_o only_o the_o ordinary_a pastor_n who_o give_v a_o be_v to_o the_o church_n at_o first_o but_o yet_o further_o at_o this_o day_n to_o speak_v proper_o it_o be_v not_o their_o word_n that_o produce_v the_o faith_n in_o those_o who_o have_v it_o not_o before_o for_o that_o which_o confirm_v it_o in_o those_o who_o have_v it_o and_o that_o which_o produce_v it_o in_o those_o who_o have_v it_o not_o be_v the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o to_o who_o we_o must_v go_v for_o conduct_n if_o we_o will_v have_v good_a success_n they_o be_v then_o to_o speak_v proper_o no_o
we_o see_v the_o condition_n that_o be_v necessary_a to_o a_o lawful_a call_n as_o examination_n information_n of_o manner_n and_o the_o like_a so_o ill_o observe_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o christian_a prudence_n will_v not_o suffer_v we_o to_o trust_v to_o she_o and_o her_o election_n which_o for_o the_o most_o part_n will_v be_v null_a if_o they_o be_v examine_v according_a to_o their_o own_o canon_n calvin_n have_v write_v that_o god_n set_v up_o apostle_n in_o his_o time_n or_o at_o least_o evangelist_n to_o draw_v man_n from_o the_o party_n of_o antichrist_n i_o answer_v 92._o that_o calvin_n only_o call_v the_o reformer_n apostle_n and_o evangelist_n by_o some_o kind_n of_o resemblance_n which_o they_o have_v with_o the_o first_o evangelist_n in_o some_o respect_n not_o that_o they_o bring_v a_o new_a revelation_n with_o they_o into_o the_o world_n as_o the_o apostle_n and_o evangelist_n do_v but_o because_o god_n make_v use_v of_o they_o to_o make_v the_o light_n of_o his_o gospel_n which_o be_v much_o darken_v strike_v upon_o the_o eye_n of_o man_n with_o splendour_n and_o they_o honour_v those_o to_o this_o day_n with_o the_o title_n of_o apostle_n who_o now_o employ_v themselves_o in_o make_v christianity_n know_v to_o the_o nation_n that_o be_v stranger_n to_o it_o although_o they_o be_v not_o immediate_o send_v from_o god_n and_o though_o they_o have_v not_o any_o new_a revelation_n he_o allege_n in_o the_o end_n the_o dispute_n that_o be_v between_o a_o protetestant_n name_v adrian_n saravias_n and_o beza_n where_o beza_n seem_v to_o 94._o admit_v of_o only_a a_o extraordinary_a call_n in_o the_o reformer_n i_o answer_v that_o as_o well_o saravias_n as_o beza_n be_v particular_a author_n who_o may_v have_v have_v both_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o thought_n a_o little_a excessive_a about_o this_o matter_n and_o it_o may_v be_v may_v have_v even_o dispute_v the_o one_o against_o the_o other_o without_o well_o understand_v one_o another_o this_o be_v that_o which_o fall_v out_o every_o day_n between_o person_n otherwise_o very_o learned_a beza_n reject_v the_o ordination_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n not_o that_o he_o think_v the_o ministry_n be_v absolute_o extinct_a there_o nor_o that_o they_o have_v not_o there_o any_o right_n to_o a_o call_v but_o because_o the_o call_v of_o person_n there_o be_v make_v after_o a_o very_a confuse_a and_o corrupt_a manner_n without_o examination_n either_o of_o doctrine_n or_o manner_n by_o reason_n of_o which_o they_o be_v most_o frequent_o give_v to_o unworthy_a person_n and_o that_o instead_o of_o ordain_v they_o to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n they_o ordain_v they_o only_o to_o sacrifice_n that_o conclude_v that_o the_o ordinary_a call_v which_o the_o first_o reformer_n receive_v be_v not_o pure_a than_o that_o of_o other_o if_o god_n have_v not_o give_v they_o the_o grace_n to_o rectify_v it_o as_o they_o do_v by_o a_o just_a and_o lawful_a use_n of_o it_o but_o that_o do_v not_o conclude_v that_o such_o as_o it_o be_v it_o do_v not_o put_v they_o into_o a_o right_n and_o obligation_n to_o cleanse_v it_o from_o that_o ill_a which_o it_o have_v by_o that_o good_a which_o remain_v in_o it_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la oppose_v further_o a_o article_n of_o a_o national_a 100_o synod_n hold_v at_o gap_n anno_fw-la 1603._o which_o he_o set_v down_o in_o these_o word_n upon_o the_o 31_o article_n of_o the_o confession_n of_o faith_n it_o have_v be_v put_v to_o the_o question_n whether_o when_o they_o come_v to_o treat_v of_o the_o call_v of_o our_o pastor_n they_o shall_v found_v the_o authority_n which_o they_o have_v to_o reform_v the_o church_n and_o to_o teach_v upon_o the_o call_v which_o they_o have_v receive_v from_o the_o roman_a church_n the_o assembly_n determine_v that_o they_o ought_v mere_o to_o refer_v it_o to_o the_o article_n of_o the_o extraordinary_a call_n by_o which_o god_n extraordinary_o and_o inward_o stir_v they_o up_o to_o their_o ministry_n and_o not_o in_o the_o least_o to_o any_o thing_n that_o remain_v of_o that_o ordinary_a corrupt_a call_n but_o since_o he_o will_v give_v himself_o the_o trouble_n to_o look_v into_o our_o national_a synod_n he_o ought_v not_o to_o stop_v there_o he_o ought_v to_o go_v on_o even_o to_o that_o of_o rochel_n which_o be_v hold_v immediate_o after_o that_o of_o gap_n in_o the_o year_n 1607_o and_o there_o he_o will_v have_v find_v that_o that_o article_n have_v be_v set_v down_o different_o in_o several_a copy_n and_o have_v be_v alter_v by_o the_o negligence_n of_o the_o copier_n it_o be_v reestablish_v in_o that_o synod_n which_o be_v draw_v into_o a_o act_n in_o these_o word_n in_o the_o 31_o article_n of_o the_o confession_n of_o faith_n of_o the_o synod_n of_o gap_n wherein_o mention_n be_v make_v of_o the_o first_o pastor_n of_o the_o reform_a church_n these_o word_n and_o to_o teach_v which_o be_v find_v in_o some_o copy_n shall_v be_v raise_v out_o and_o in_o the_o place_n of_o mere_o there_o shall_v be_v put_v chief_o and_o that_o last_o clause_n and_o not_o in_o the_o least_o to_o any_o thing_n that_o remain_v of_o that_o ordinary_a corrupt_a call_v shall_v be_v also_o mend_v rather_o than_o to_o that_o little_a which_o remain_v of_o their_o ordinary_a call_n to_o have_v make_v use_n of_o that_o article_n serious_o he_o ought_v to_o have_v do_v it_o not_o in_o the_o state_n wherein_o the_o ignorance_n of_o the_o copier_n have_v put_v it_o but_o in_o that_o wherein_o a_o whole_a synod_n have_v reestablish_v it_o at_o the_o bottom_n it_o will_v appear_v that_o they_o there_o treat_v only_o about_o a_o call_n for_o the_o reformation_n and_o not_o for_o the_o exercise_n of_o the_o ordinary_a ministry_n and_o the_o synod_n do_v not_o but_o in_o some_o respect_n only_o deny_v that_o that_o call_v for_o a_o reformation_n be_v not_o found_v upon_o that_o that_o the_o first_o reformer_n have_v receive_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n howsoever_o corrupt_v it_o be_v but_o it_o will_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v chief_o refer_v to_o a_o particular_a providence_n of_o god_n which_o by_o extraordinary_a gift_n and_o talent_n have_v raise_v man_n up_o for_o so_o great_a a_o work_n in_o effect_n although_o we_o shall_v acknowledge_v that_o in_o the_o church_n the_o reject_v or_o reformation_n of_o error_n shall_v be_v the_o common_a right_n of_o all_o christian_n and_o that_o that_o right_o will_v yet_o more_o especial_o belong_v to_o the_o ordinary_a pastor_n then_o to_o other_o by_o the_o obligation_n of_o their_o charge_n join_v to_o that_o of_o their_o baptism_n yet_o we_o do_v not_o fail_v to_o acknowledge_v also_o that_o there_o be_v something_o extraordinary_a in_o the_o person_n of_o the_o reformer_n to_o wit_n the_o gift_n or_o the_o admirable_a talent_n which_o make_v they_o fit_a for_o that_o work_n and_o capable_a of_o reduce_v their_o right_n into_o act_n without_o which_o their_o right_n will_v have_v be_v to_o no_o purpose_n as_o it_o do_v remain_v in_o divers_a other_o unprofitable_a who_o have_v not_o the_o same_o gift_n but_o that_o very_a thing_n may_v gain_v they_o the_o great_a authority_n and_o this_o be_v that_o which_o the_o synod_n will_v say_v and_o which_o we_o say_v also_o with_o it_o for_o we_o distinguish_v three_o thing_n in_o the_o reformer_n from_o whence_o there_o result_v as_o full_a and_o entire_a a_o call_n to_o reform_v the_o church_n as_o they_o can_v desire_v the_o one_o be_v the_o general_a and_o common_a right_o that_o all_o christian_n have_v to_o combat_n error_n since_o they_o be_v all_o call_v to_o defend_v the_o truth_n the_o other_o be_v a_o more_o peculiar_a right_n which_o they_o have_v for_o the_o same_o thing_n in_o quality_n of_o pastor_n for_o how_o impure_a soever_o their_o call_n be_v it_o will_v always_o bind_v they_o to_o have_v a_o care_n of_o their_o flock_n and_o to_o procure_v god_n glory_n and_o the_o three_o be_v the_o extraordinary_a grace_n and_o light_n that_o god_n have_v communicate_v to_o they_o and_o render_v they_o thereby_o fit_a for_o that_o work_n but_o it_o be_v this_o last_o that_o reduce_v the_o two_o other_o into_o act_n and_o therefore_o they_o look_v on_o it_o there_o principal_o when_o they_o treat_v of_o the_o reformation_n because_o if_o they_o have_v never_o meet_v with_o this_o the_o two_o other_o will_v have_v be_v useless_a right_n and_o ineffectual_a obligation_n after_o that_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o comprehend_v how_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la be_v mistake_v when_o under_o a_o pretence_n of_o that_o extraordinary_a call_n that_o we_o attribute_v to_o the_o first_o reformer_n in_o respect_n of_o their_o gift_n or_o talent_n he_o imagine_v that_o he_o can_v lay_v it_o to_o our_o charge_n that_o we_o believe_v that_o the_o
matter_n of_o this_o importance_n we_o shall_v take_v the_o great_a care_n to_o avoid_v dazzle_v our_o sight_n with_o word_n that_o will_v have_v more_o of_o show_v then_o solidity_n it_o will_v be_v good_a to_o inform_v ourselves_o more_o exact_o whether_o this_o way_n be_v so_o easy_a as_o they_o represent_v it_o whether_o there_o do_v not_o occur_v some_o obstacle_n that_o hinder_v our_o pass_a further_a and_o whether_o it_o be_v not_o of_o so_o excessive_a a_o length_n that_o we_o ought_v not_o rational_o to_o hope_v to_o come_v to_o the_o end_n of_o it_o whatsoever_o diligence_n we_o use_v whether_o it_o be_v fit_v to_o all_o the_o world_n and_o whether_o there_o be_v not_o any_o person_n who_o may_v not_o go_v on_o faithful_o in_o it_o arrive_v to_o the_o end_n whether_o it_o lead_v behold_v here_o another_o conclusion_n against_o our_o way_n inwrape_v under_o a_o so_o to_o wit_n that_o it_o be_v of_o a_o length_n so_o excessive_a as_o we_o ought_v not_o rational_o to_o hope_v ever_o to_o get_v to_o the_o end_n whatsoever_o diligence_n we_o use_v and_o that_o at_o least_o it_o be_v not_o fit_v to_o all_o the_o world_n in_o what_o follow_v he_o fill_v his_o chapter_n with_o the_o objection_n and_o difficulty_n that_o tend_v to_o turn_v away_o man_n from_o the_o scripture_n and_o to_o make_v they_o conceive_v that_o in_o effect_v it_o be_v that_o infinite_a way_n which_o have_v no_o issue_n at_o all_o of_o which_o he_o have_v speak_v and_o that_o way_n of_o so_o excessive_a a_o length_n that_o we_o can_v never_o come_v to_o the_o end_n of_o whatsoever_o diligence_n we_o shall_v use_v but_o the_o meaning_n of_o that_o be_v that_o according_a to_o he_o the_o way_n to_o be_v assure_v of_o the_o article_n of_o the_o faith_n by_o the_o scripture_n be_v absolute_o unprofitable_a to_o all_o man_n of_o what_o order_n soever_o they_o be_v and_o for_o what_o truth_n soever_o it_o be_v for_o a_o infinite_a way_n which_o have_v no_o issue_n and_o the_o length_n of_o which_o be_v so_o excessive_a that_o we_o can_v never_o with_o all_o the_o diligence_n we_o shall_v use_v come_v to_o the_o end_n of_o it_o be_v equal_o unprofitable_a to_o all_o as_o well_o to_o the_o learned_a as_o the_o ignorant_a and_o moreover_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o difficulty_n that_o render_v it_o infinite_a according_a to_o he_o be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v in_o some_o private_a passage_n but_o in_o the_o scripture_n in_o general_n it_o follow_v that_o we_o can_v never_o be_v assure_v by_o that_o mean_n of_o any_o truth_n so_o that_o behold_v here_o according_a to_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la the_o scripture_n absolute_o unprofitable_a and_o that_o for_o all_o sort_n of_o man_n and_o all_o sort_n of_o truth_n in_o one_o word_n as_o the_o tilt_n of_o his_o chapter_n bear_v it_o be_v a_o ridiculous_a way_n and_o impossible_a to_o instruct_v man_n in_o the_o truth_n whatsoever_o prejudice_n there_o have_v be_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n against_o the_o reformation_n i_o can_v believe_v that_o it_o will_v not_o be_v shake_v at_o so_o scandalon_n and_o un-christian_a a_o proposition_n for_o to_o treat_v the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o be_v the_o oracle_n of_o christian_n and_o the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o a_o ridiculous_a way_n and_o to_o reject_v it_o as_o absolute_o unprofitable_a and_o improper_a to_o instruct_v man_n in_o the_o truth_n without_o distinction_n without_o limitation_n as_o much_o for_o one_o sort_n as_o for_o another_o as_o much_o for_o one_o truth_n as_o for_o another_o be_v methinks_v a_o new_a gospel_n which_o we_o have_v not_o yet_o hear_v speak_v of_o for_o there_o be_v never_o any_o thing_n speak_v so_o high_a till_o this_o or_o to_o say_v better_o none_o be_v ever_o yet_o carry_v out_o to_o such_o excess_n we_o have_v read_v in_o pamelius_n and_o 8._o some_o other_o with_o indignation_n and_o horror_n that_o the_o scripture_n be_v a_o nose_n of_o wax_n which_o may_v he_o turn_v which_o way_n we_o please_v and_o that_o it_o be_v far_o more_o easy_a to_o wrest_v it_o to_o profane_a and_o impious_a thing_n than_o it_o be_v to_o make_v use_n of_o half_a the_o verse_n of_o virgil_n to_o compose_v epithalamium_n we_o have_v see_v in_o pighius_fw-la and_o elsewhere_o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v a_o dumb_a rule_n a_o dumb_a witness_n a_o dead_a and_o lifeless_a thing_n a_o sword_n that_o cut_v with_o both_o edge_n and_o such_o other_o expression_n injurious_a to_o the_o scripture_n but_o no_o body_n that_o i_o know_v of_o ever_o go_v so_o far_o yet_o as_o to_o make_v it_o a_o ridiculous_a way_n for_o the_o instruct_v of_o man_n in_o the_o truth_n there_o be_v enough_o in_o the_o world_n who_o know_v that_o these_o gentleman_n of_o who_o number_n the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la be_v write_v nothing_o but_o for_o one_o and_o the_o same_o interest_n and_o with_o the_o same_o spirit_n i_o may_v therefore_o methinks_v with_o very_o good_a reason_n make_v use_n for_o this_o occasion_n of_o what_o the_o author_n of_o the_o translation_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n of_o mons_fw-la have_v write_v in_o his_o preface_n to_o oppose_v it_o to_o the_o author_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la to_o show_v he_o that_o the_o spirit_n that_o animate_v they_o be_v a_o unequal_a spirit_n that_o blow_v both_o cold_a and_o hot_a for_o behold_v what_o that_o preface_n carry_v in_o it_o we_o hope_v that_o not_o only_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o more_o learn_v but_o even_o of_o the_o simple_a sort_n may_v find_v here_o that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o the_o translation_n that_o which_o shall_v be_v necessary_a for_o their_o instructtion_n provide_v that_o they_o read_v at_o with_o a_o entire_a simplicity_n of_o heart_n and_o address_v themselves_o humble_o to_o the_o son_n of_o god_n in_o say_v to_o he_o with_o peter_n lord_n to_o who_o shall_v we_o go_v it_o be_v thou_o who_o have_v the_o word_n of_o eternal_a life_n and_o it_o be_v thou_o alone_o who_o can_v make_v we_o learn_v they_o must_v go_v to_o he_o as_o those_o in_o the_o gospel_n of_o when_o it_o be_v say_v that_o they_o come_v to_o hear_v he_o and_o to_o be_v heal_v of_o their_o disease_n and_o a_o little_a low_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v like_a to_o a_o great_a river_n say_v saint_n gregore_o which_o have_v always_o slide_v 〈◊〉_d and_o which_o will_v do_v so_o 〈◊〉_d the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n the_o great_a and_o the_o small_a the_o mighty_a and_o the_o feeble_a may_v find_v there_o that_o live_a water_n which_o rise_v up_o even_o unto_o heaven_n it_o offer_v itself_o to_o all_o and_o be_v fit_v to_o all_o it_o have_v a_o simplicity_n that_o descend_v even_o to_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o most_o simple_a and_o a_o height_n that_o exercise_n and_o elevate_v the_o most_o raise_v all_o may_v draw_v there_o indiffirent_o but_o it_o will_v be_v far_o from_o be_v able_a to_o be_v draw_v dry_a by_o fill_v we_o we_o may_v always_o lose_v ourselves_o in_o the_o bottomless_a depth_n of_o learning_n and_o wisdom_n that_o we_o may_v adore_v without_o be_v able_a to_o comprehend_v but_o that_o which_o ought_v to_o comfort_v we_o in_o that_o obscurity_n be_v that_o according_a to_o saint_n augustine_n the_o holy_a scripture_n set_v before_o we_o in_o a_o easy_a and_o intelligible_a manner_n all_o that_o which_o be_v necessary_a to_o we_o for_o the_o conduct_n of_o our_o life_n which_o she_o explain_v and_o make_v clear_v herself_o in_o tell_v we_o clear_o in_o some_o place_n that_o which_o she_o say_v obscure_o in_o other_o this_o language_n be_v very_o different_a from_o that_o which_o they_o hold_v in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o prejudices_fw-la the_o one_o say_v that_o we_o shall_v find_v in_o the_o scripture_n all_o that_o which_o be_v necessary_a for_o our_o instruction_n and_o the_o other_o assure_v we_o that_o the_o way_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v ridiculous_a and_o impossible_a to_o instruct_v man_n in_o the_o truth_n the_o one_o declare_v that_o the_o scripture_n propound_v to_o we_o after_o a_o easy_a and_o intelligible_a manner_n all_o that_o be_v necessary_a for_o the_o conduct_n of_o our_o life_n which_o it_o explain_v and_o make_v clear_v herself_o and_o the_o other_o say_v that_o it_o be_v a_o way_n of_o so_o excessive_a a_o length_n that_o we_o ought_v not_o rational_o to_o hope_v ever_o to_o come_v to_o the_o end_n whatsoever_o diligence_n we_o shall_v use_v the_o one_o make_v it_o a_o mean_n of_o instruction_n proper_a not_o only_o for_o enlighten_v soul_n but_o even_o for_o the_o simple_a sort_n for_o great_a and_o small_a for_o strong_a and_o weak_a and_o the_o other_o in_o make_v it_o a_o infinite_a way_n which_o have_v no_o issue_n make_v it_o improper_a not_o only_o for_o the_o simple_a but_o even_o for_o the_o most_o